Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n invisible_a visible_a 2,160 5 9.2231 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12484 Of the author and substance of the protestant church and religion two bookes. Written first in Latin by R.S. Doctour of Diuinity, and now reuiewed by the author, and translated into English by VV. Bas.; De auctore et essentia Protestanticae Ecclesiae et religionis libri duo. English Smith, Richard, 1566-1655.; Bas., W. 1621 (1621) STC 22812; ESTC S117611 239,031 514

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

heathen_n pagan_n and_o infidel_n and_o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o swisser_n church_n he_o define_v schism_n to_o be_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n zanchius_n also_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 7._o reach_v that_o schismatic_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n and_o su●us_o in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 5._o approve_v the_o fame_n of_o such_o schismatic_n as_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o stranger_n in_o england_n write_v to_o beza_n in_o the_o 24_o epistle_n have_v these_o word_n in_o their_o 13._o article_n whosoever_o be_v lawful_o excommunicate_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n or_o cut_v himself_o of_o upon_o unlawful_a cause_n and_o with_o scandal_n in_o that_o do_v loose_v all_o privilege_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o beza_n answer_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n in_o this_o manner_n your_o thirteen_o article_n we_o whole_o receive_v at_o most_o orthodoxal_a casaubon_n in_o his_o 15._o exercitation_n against_o baronius_n num_fw-la 6._o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o how_o often_o soever_o a_o pious_a flock_n be_v join_v to_o a_o true_a bishop_n there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o god_n in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o any_o forsake_v that_o church_n it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n final_o chamier_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o armand_n exclude_v schismatic_n out_o of_o the_o church_n because_o say_v he_o they_o want_v the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n protestant_n english_a protestant_n among_o our_o english_a protestant_n his_o majesty_n in_o his_o foresay_a epistle_n to_o cardinal_n peron_n all_o those_o testimony_n of_o augustin_n prove_v only_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o those_o who_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o the_o king_n willing_o grant_v d._n whitaker_n in_o his_o 2._o controver_n 5._o quest_n 6._o cap._n say_v it_o be_v false_a that_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n be_v true_a church_n again_o the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v not_o of_o divide_a but_o of_o unite_a member_n and_o cap._n 2_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n be_v that_o which_o consist_v of_o catholik_o d._n fulke_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n what_o avail_v it_o they_o to_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o have_v be_v sound_a in_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n see_v they_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o which_o alone_a salvation_n be_v and_o from_o her_o true_a head_n what_o skill_v it_o whether_o one_o be_v draw_v by_o heresy_n or_o schism_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v subject_a to_o everlasting_a damnation_n d._n humphrey_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 3._o reason_n of_o f._n campian_n we_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v undo_v who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o followship_n of_o the_o church_n and_o d._n feild_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 7_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v apply_v to_o distinguish_v man_n hold_v the_o say_v in_o unity_n from_o schismatik_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n c._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o schismatic_n be_v not_o catholic_a christian_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o protestant_n sometime_o do_v teach_v that_o the_o true_a church_n consist_v of_o catholik_o &_o of_o member_n unite_a not_o divide_v that_o it_o have_v no_o schism_n or_o sect_n that_o schismatik_n be_v not_o catholik_o that_o their_o unity_n be_v not_o true_a nor_o catholic_a that_o their_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v forsake_v that_o they_o be_v not_o univocal_o church_n nor_o true_a church_n that_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o out_o of_o the_o church_n altogether_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o actual_o neither_o of_o the_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a church_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n which_o confession_n of_o they_o must_v be_v well_o note_v and_o keep_v in_o mind_n for_o thereby_o be_v overthrow_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o 2._o book_n their_o only_a argument_n wherewith_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n and_o also_o be_v deface_v their_o only_a essential_a mark_n of_o find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n for_o schismatic_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v they_o confess_v in_o the_o 2._o book_n hold_v true_a doctrine_n and_o nevertheless_o as_o here_o they_o acknowledge_v be_v not_o of_o the_o true_a church_n article_n they_o exclude_v those_o that_o deny_v any_o fundamental_a article_n 5._o in_o like_a manner_n they_o do_v common_o debar_v from_o their_o church_n all_o such_o as_o deny_v any_o principal_a or_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n melancthon_n in_o his_o book_n of_o common_a place_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n who_o pertinacious_o maintain_v error_n opposite_a to_o the_o foundation_n and_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o bavarian_a article_n saint_n may_v have_v error_n but_o not_o such_o as_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o take_v order_n agreement_n in_o the_o foundation_n lutheran_n lutheran_n be_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o the_o 3._o cap._n of_o the_o 1._o epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o foundation_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o and_o in_o his_o 79._o proposition_n tom_n 4_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o those_o company_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n who_o either_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o gospel_n or_o impugn_v some_o article_n of_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v some_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o decalogue_n or_o maintain_v open_a idol_n chemnitius_n in_o his_o common_a place_n pa._n 3._o title_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v these_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a church_n who_o embrace_v fundamental_a error_n and_o the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o ratisbon_n sesse_n 14._o hutter_n in_o his_o analysis_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n gesner_n in_o his_o 24._o place_n adam_z francis_z in_o his_o 11._o place_n and_o other_o lutheran_n common_o agree_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v fundamental_o or_o in_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n give_v this_o note_n to_o know_v who_o be_v in_o the_o church_n sacramentary_n sacramentary_n those_o who_o hold_v the_o foundation_n as_o for_o sacramentary_n caluin_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o institution_n cap._n 2._o num_fw-la 1_o so_o soon_o as_o a_o lie_n have_v break_v into_o the_o castle_n of_o religion_n the_o sum_n of_o necessary_a doctrine_n be_v invert_v the_o use_n of_o sacrament_n be_v fall_v certain_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n ensue_v even_o as_o a_o man_n life_n be_v lose_v when_o his_o throat_n be_v cut_v or_o his_o vital_a part_n deadly_o wound_v and_o soon_o after_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n where_o lie_n and_o error_n have_v get_v to_o the_o top_n and_o cap._n 19_o num_fw-la 17_o without_o doubt_v the_o church_n of_o the_o faithful_a must_v agree_v in_o all_o the_o head_n of_o our_o religion_n sadeel_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o thesis_n hold_v at_o posna_n cap._n 12_o i_o think_v the_o matter_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v define_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o in_o what_o church_n soever_o dissent_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o say_v and_o be_v obstinate_a in_o their_o error_n such_o appertain_v not_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o arthure_n cap._n 12._o vesinu●_n in_o his_o catechism_n quest_n 54._o cap._n 4_o the_o whole_a church_n err_v not_o nor_o whole_o nor_o in_o the_o foundation_n polanus_fw-la in_o his_o thesis_n of_o the_o church_n say_v the_o church_n err_v not_o in_o the_o foundation_n the_o same_o teach_v zanchius_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 7._o lubbertus_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o the_o church_n c_o 3_o vorstius_n in_o his_o anti-bellarmin_a pag._n 139._o bucanus_n in_o his_o 41._o place_n and_o other_o sacramentary_n common_o and_o with_o they_o herein_o agree_v our_o english_a protestant_n protestant_n english_a protestant_n for_o thus_o say_v his_o majesty_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cardinal_n peron_n the_o church_n be_v unite_v in_o unity_n of_o say_v and_o doctrine_n in_o those_o head_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o d._n whitaker_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o controversy_n the_o foundation_n of_o say_v be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o one_o be_v shake_v nothing_o in_o all_o religion_n remain_v sound_a and_o contr._n 2._o quest_n 4._o cap._n
not_o where_o but_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n hyperius_n in_o his_o method_n of_o divinity_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 349_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n at_o that_o time_n of_o elias_n altogether_o invisible_a to_o man_n and_o know_v to_o god_n alone_o the_o swisser_n confession_n cap._n 17_o the_o church_n hide_v from_o our_o eye_n and_o know_v to_o god_n only_o alone_o know_a to_o god_n alone_o do_v often_o fly_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n besnage_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o visible_a and_o invisible_a church_n cap._n 4_o the_o church_n be_v eftsoon_o know_v to_o god_n alone_o son_n be_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o sponde_v cap._n 2._o pag._n 32_o we_o say_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o as_o be_v sometime_o know_v to_o god_n alone_o and_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 478_o we_o say_v that_o the_o external_a state_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cease_v and_o that_o the_o faithful_a and_o godly_a may_v be_v so_o scatter_v that_o they_o worship_n god_n only_o in_o heart_n and_o mind_n only_o worship_n god_n in_o heart_n only_o but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o impli_v manifest_a contradiction_n that_o a_o church_n which_o be_v not_o where_o but_o in_o the_o sight_n god_n which_o be_v know_v to_o god_n alone_o which_o fly_v man_n judgement_n and_o which_o worship_v god_n only_o in_o heart_n and_o mind_n shall_v be_v visible_a or_o see_v of_o man_n invisible_a how_o long_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v invisible_a 13._o if_o any_o ask_v they_o how_o many_o age_n their_o church_n be_v thus_o invisible_a luther_n upon_o the_o 1._o cap._n to_o the_o galat._n tom_n 5._o fol._n 214._o say_v that_o she_o lay_v hide_v above_o 300._o year_n to_o who_o come_v near_o danaeus_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n de_fw-fr roman_n pontif._n cap._n 8._o saying_n the_o church_n be_v in_o banishment_n 350._o year_n but_o luther_n better_a think_v on_o the_o matter_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o popery_n tom_fw-mi 7._o make_v she_o to_o have_v lurk_v 600._o year_n and_o with_o he_o agree_v hospinian_n in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a of_o the_o 1._o part_n of_o his_o history_n melancthon_n in_o his_o oration_n for_o luther_n tom_n 2._o will_v have_v this_o lurk_a to_o have_v be_v 400._o year_n but_o caluin_n his_o book_n of_o scandal_n perkins_n and_o bale_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v will_v have_v it_o to_o have_v continue_v 900._o year_n parcus_n above_o cite_v will_v have_v it_o to_o have_v begin_v in_o constantine_n time_n and_o napper_n from_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 316_o with_o who_o consent_v brocard_n upon_o the_o 11._o chap._n apocal._n pag._n 110._o fuccius_fw-la in_o his_o cronology_n fetch_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o lurk_v a_o little_a high_o from_o the_o year_n 261._o and_o final_o curio_n of_o the_o largeness_n of_o god_n kingdom_n pag._n 33_o almost_o from_o the_o apostle_n age_n even_o to_o our_o tim_n which_o they_o also_o intimate_v who_o say_v that_o popery_n begin_v in_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n o_o christ_n most_o patient_a lord_n that_o i_o may_v cry_v out_o with_o tertullian_n who_o so_o many_o year_n yea_o so_o many_o age_n do_v suffer_v thy_o doctrine_n to_o be_v turn_v upside_o down_o till_o luther_n come_v to_o help_v thou_o 14._o church_n luther_n author_n of_o the_o visible_a protestant_a church_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v relate_v in_o this_o chapter_n it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o luther_n be_v at_o least_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_n visible_a church_n and_o if_o not_o the_o first_o which_o found_v it_o yet_o the_o first_o which_o after_o it_o be_v fall_v &_o in_o substance_n perish_v do_v raise_v and_o restore_v it_o again_o for_o when_o luther_n begin_v first_o to_o preach_v there_o be_v no_o visible_a protestant_n church_n at_o all_o and_o by_o his_o preach_v there_o become_v such_o a_o visible_a church_n therefore_o undoubted_o he_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o and_o if_o any_o protestant_n against_o so_o many_o and_o so_o open_a confession_n of_o his_o father_n and_o brethren_n will_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n he_o shall_v first_o gainsay_v so_o many_o witness_n without_o all_o exception_n in_o this_o matter_n who_o have_v search_v all_o corner_n and_o inquire_v of_o all_o man_n have_v nevertheless_o confess_v that_o at_o that_o time_n no_o such_o visible_a church_n appear_v beside_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o without_o all_o either_o divine_a or_o humane_a testimony_n which_o to_o do_v of_o time_n before_o his_o age_n be_v to_o play_v the_o prophet_n or_o rather_o the_o mad_a man_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n to_o affirm_v without_o all_o kind_n of_o testimony_n especial_o such_o a_o thing_n and_o so_o manifest_o false_a as_o that_o so_o many_o and_o such_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o have_v most_o need_n to_o affirm_v it_o be_v nevertheless_o force_v to_o deny_v it_o that_o it_o want_v all_o sufficient_a humane_a testimony_n be_v evident_a because_o neither_o the_o foresay_a protestant_n nor_o any_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n can_v bring_v forth_o any_o sufficient_a witness_n who_o will_v depose_v that_o he_o have_v see_v such_o a_o church_n before_o luther_n revolt_n that_o also_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o divine_a testimony_n be_v manifest_a by_o what_o have_v be_v before_o rehearse_v for_o protestant_n at_o we_o have_v hear_v teach_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o perpetuity_n which_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n 7._o sup._n num_fw-la 7._o be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o invisible_a church_n that_o be_v to_o a_o society_n of_o man_n in_o election_n and_o justification_n out_o of_o which_o church_n they_o exclude_v the_o reprobate_n and_o wicked_a and_o not_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v to_o the_o society_n in_o profession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o lawful_a use_n of_o sacrament_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o most_o needs_o say_v so_o since_o they_o common_o teach_v that_o the_o invisible_a church_n whereof_o the_o elect_a and_o just_a alone_o be_v member_n be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o god_n and_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n whereof_o the_o wicked_a &_o reprobate_a may_v be_v member_n be_v but_o a_o church_n in_o sight_n of_o man_n that_o be_v a_o shadow_n and_o outward_a show_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o god_n promise_v perpetuity_n to_o that_o church_n only_o which_o in_o his_o sight_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o not_o to_o she_o which_o be_v no_o church_n but_o only_o in_o sight_n of_o man_n when_o as_o i_o say_v they_o teach_v that_o god_n promise_v perpetuity_n and_o continuance_n only_o to_o the_o invisible_a church_n out_o of_o his_o promise_n they_o can_v infer_v 176_o lib._n 2._o count_n maxim_n c._n 3._o l_o 3_o c_o 176_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v or_o shall_v ever_o continue_v of_o who_o therefore_o that_o i_o may_v use_v s._n augustin_n word_n have_v thou_o hear_v this_o whence_o do_v thou_o learn_v it_o where_o have_v thou_o read_v it_o for_o to_o believe_v it_o whereupon_o have_v thou_o presume_v for_o to_o affirm_v it_o where_o there_o be_v neither_o any_o authority_n nor_o reason_n if_o protestant_n cry_v out_o ●_o whitak_n count_v 2._o q._n 3_o c._n ●_o that_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o say_v in_o elias_n his_o time_n there_o be_v any_o church_n visible_a among_o the_o gentile_n beside_o the_o synagogue_n which_o now_o after_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o year_n we_o can_v name_v how_o much_o more_o absurd_a aught_o they_o think_v it_o to_o say_v that_o before_o luther_n arise_v there_o be_v a_o visible_a protestant_a church_n which_o yet_o none_o neither_o of_o that_o church_n nor_o out_o of_o it_o neither_o at_o this_o time_n nor_o at_o that_o can_v ever_o name_n 15._o it_o be_v thus_o manifest_a that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o visible_a protestant_a church_n it_o follow_v likewise_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o and_o every_o protestant_a church_n for_o as_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o invisible_a church_n as_o protestant_n mean_v that_o be_v such_o as_o believe_v and_o worship_v god_n only_o in_o hart_n and_o mind_n and_o no_o way_n profess_v outward_o her_o faith_n and_o religion_n yet_o before_o we_o come_v to_o that_o we_o will_v first_o refute_v those_o who_o when_o they_o consider_v how_o absurd_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o affirm_v such_o a_o invisible_a church_n especial_o for_o so_o many_o age_n they_o begin_v to_o shuffle_v and_o either_o send_v we_o to_o other_o or_o themselves_o name_v we_o such_o as_o only_o in_o part_n or_o in_o some_o sort_n hold_v protestantisme_n but_o embrace_v not_o all_o the_o substantial_a point_n thereof_o and_o
church_n as_o far_o as_o it_o have_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o church_n be_v a_o church_n that_o it_o have_v not_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n that_o it_o have_v all_o divine_a thing_n dead_a not_o yet_o dead_a and_o of_o god_n part_n be_v yet_o the_o church_n zanchius_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n satan_n even_o in_o the_o very_a roman_a church_n can_v not_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o that_o pass_n that_o it_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v t●e_v form_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n and_o soon_o after_o wherefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v yet_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n christ_n yet_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n p●essy_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o chap._n avouch_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n christ_n spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o yet_o forsake_v of_o he_o that_o as_o a_o mother_n she_o bear_v child_n to_o god_n which_o he_o repeat_v again_o in_o the_o 10._o chap._n that_o she_o retain_v life_n and_o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v no_o more_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o she_o than_o the_o name_n of_o a_o man_n unto_o a_o live_a man_n bucan_n in_o his_o 41._o place_n of_o the_o church_n quest_n 5_o the_o assembly_n of_o papist_n be_v church_n as_o a_o man_n infect_v with_o leprosy_n or_o beside_o his_o wit_n do_v not_o leave_v to_o be_v a_o man_n polanus_fw-la in_o his_o first_o part_n and_o thesis_n of_o the_o church_n the_o roman_a church_n true_o be_v a_o church_n because_o antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o his_o syntagme_n of_o divinity_n lib._n 7._o c._n 8_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v yet_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n seravia_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o degree_n of_o minister_n pag._n 30_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o church_n and_o mark_v what_o i_o say_v more_o she_o be_v our_o mother_n in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o god_n do_v regenerate_v us._n and_o pag._n 31_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n remain_v this_o day_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n boysseul_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o spondé_n pag._n 6_o i_o exclude_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n out_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n i_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n which_o he_o repeat_v oftentimes_o and_o pag._n 12_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n pag._n 19_o it_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n p._n 283_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o church_n spouse_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n god_n yet_o the_o church_n spouse_n &_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o pag._n 822_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n redeem_v by_o he_o vorstius_n in_o his_o anti-bellarmin_a p._n 188_o the_o vulgar_a roman_a church_n have_v not_o yet_o lose_v all_o spiritual_a life_n be_v not_o yet_o open_o divorce_v from_o christ_n and_o peter_n martyr_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o bullinger_n write_v alive_a yet_o alive_a that_o he_o give_v counsel_n that_o the_o papist_n &_o they_o shall_v not_o call_v one_o the_o other_o heretic_n but_o account_v themselves_o for_o brethren_n as_o for_o english_a protestant_n protestant_n engli_fw-la h_o protestant_n his_o majesty_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 1605._o 9_o of_o november_n and_o put_v forth_o in_o print_n speak_v thus_o we_o do_v just_o confess_v that_o many_o papist_n especial_o our_o forefather_n lay_v their_o only_a trust_n upon_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n may_v be_v and_o oftentimes_o be_v save_v detest_a in_o that_o point_n and_o think_v the_o cruelty_n of_o puritan_n worthy_a of_o fire_n save_v papist_n may_v be_v save_v that_o will_v admit_v no_o salvation_n to_o any_o papist_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cardinal_n peron_n the_o roman_a the_o greek_a etc._n etc._n church_n be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n church_n member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o d._n andrews_n in_o his_o tortura_fw-la torti_n towards_o the_o end_n speak_v thus_o to_o the_o papist_n we_o be_v content_a to_o call_v you_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o not_o sound_a member_n hooker_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n pag._n 128_o we_o glad_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o jesus_n christ_n christ_n of_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n and_o lib._n 5._o pag._n 188_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v so_o much_o nevertheless_o still_o due_a to_o the_o same_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o be_v hold_v and_o repute_v a_o part_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n a_o limb_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n d._n covel_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o hooker_n pag._n 68_o note_n may_v be_v save_v note_n say_v we_o affirm_v they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o those_o that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n may_v notwithstanding_o be_v save_v d._n barlow_n in_o his_o 3._o sermon_n ad_fw-la clerum_fw-la the_o learnede_a writer_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n m._n bunny_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o pacification_n sect_n 18_o neither_o of_o we_o papist_n &_o protestant_n may_v just_o account_v the_o other_o to_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o be_v no_o several_a church_n from_o they_o nor_o they_o from_o us._n d._n some_o against_o penry_n in_o diverse_a place_n avouce_v that_o papist_n be_v not_o altogether_o alien_n from_o god_n covenant_n that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n and_o all_o reform_a church_n there_o be_v in_o popery_n a_o church_n a_o ministry_n a_o true_a christ_n if_o you_o think_v that_o all_o the_o popish_a sect_n which_o die_v in_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v damn_v you_o think_v absurd_o and_o dissent_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n d._n whitaker_n in_o his_o four_o controversy_n quest_n 5._o cap._n 3._o call_v the_o papist_n church_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n more_o than_o half_a dead_a and_o almost_o decay_v and_o that_o temple_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v and_o which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n he_o term_v the_o very_a church_n of_o god_n the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o lively_a temple_n compose_v of_o lively_a stone_n such_o as_o be_v the_o faithful_a &_o the_o elect_a and_o he_o add_v there_o be_v among_o they_o papist_n some_o ministry_n and_o some_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n which_o doubtless_o afford_v salvation_n unto_o some_o and_o as_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n so_o the_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o christian_a people_n be_v not_o quite_o break_v and_o count_v 2._o quest_n 5._o papist_n god_n covenant_n with_o papist_n cap._n 15._o after_o he_o have_v confess_v that_o luther_n have_v say_v that_o in_o popery_n be_v all_o the_o good_n belong_v to_o christian_n the_o key_n the_o office_n of_o preach_v true_a christianity_n and_o the_o very_a kernel_n of_o christianity_n he_o add_v these_o thing_n be_v indeed_o among_o they_o m._n powell_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o antichrist_n cap._n 2._o grant_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n albeit_o with_o a_o new_a kind_n of_o distinction_n he_o deny_v the_o popish_a church_n and_o d._n rainolds_n in_o his_o 5._o thesis_n albeit_o he_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v more_o than_o sickly_a and_o weak_a yet_o he_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o she_o be_v quite_o dead_a and_o d._n white_a in_o his_o way_n p._n 352._o say_v that_o popery_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v by_o we_o to_o be_v another_o church_n distinct_a in_o place_n and_o country_n from_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o contagion_n rage_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n itself_o and_o in_o his_o defence_n c._n 37._o pag._n 355_o i_o never_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n wherein_o our_o ancestor_n profess_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v save_v and_o cap._n 41._o pag._n 408_o profess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o in_o all_o age_n to_o have_v be_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n last_o d._n hall_n in_o his_o rome_n irreconciliable_a sect_n 1._o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n but_o not_o sound_v and_o that_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_a church_n at_o the_o sick_a from_o the_o whole_a hereto_o i_o add_v that_o oftentimes_o they_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n their_o mother_n which_o have_v bear_v they_o to_o christ_n as_o we_o shall_v rehearse_v hereafter_o
say_v the_o church_n can_v be_v destroy_v 8._o if_o any_o reply_n that_o s._n augustin_n upon_o the_o 128._o psalm_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v once_o in_o abel_n alone_o and_o tertullian_n lib._n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la cap._n 10._o the_o church_n be_v in_o one_o or_o two_o i_o answer_v that_o s._n augustin_n there_o by_o the_o church_n understand_v those_o only_a who_o the_o scripture_n by_o name_n have_v canonize_v as_o it_o have_v abel_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o abel_n time_n there_o be_v other_o that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n beside_o himself_o to_o wit_n adam_n and_o eue._n and_o tertullian_n by_o the_o church_n understand_v not_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n as_o we_o do_v but_o any_o number_n of_o christian_n such_o as_o be_v those_o domestical_a church_n which_o s._n paul_n sometime_o salute_v 9_o the_o last_o refuge_n may_v be_v that_o what_o protestant_n have_v say_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n they_o mean_v not_o of_o their_o own_o church_n and_o faith_n but_o of_o some_o other_o but_o this_o be_v a_o fond_a shift_n for_o first_o as_o i_o have_v show_v they_o mean_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o faith_n either_o therefore_o their_o church_n and_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o true_a but_o false_a or_o else_o they_o mean_v of_o their_o own_o for_o the_o true_a church_n and_o faith_n be_v but_o one_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes_n 4_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n and_o the_o nycen_n creed_n i_o believe_v one_o church_n s._n cyprian_n lib._n de_fw-la unit_fw-la one_o god_n one_o christ_n one_o church_n and_o one_o say_v s._n hilary_n ad_fw-la constant_a whatsoever_o be_v beside_o one_o faith_n be_v not_o faith_n but_o treachery_n and_o s._n leo_n serm_n 4._o de_fw-la nativit_fw-la unless_o it_o be_v one_o it_o be_v no_o faith_n nay_o luther_n lib._n cont_n papa●um_fw-la tom_n 7._o fol._n 461_o christ_n know_v not_o two_o kind_n of_o unlike_a church_n but_o one_o only_a church_n caluin_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 1._o §_o 2_o we_o can_v find_v two_o or_o three_o church_n unless_o christ_n be_v pluck_v in_o piece_n and_o in_o his_o catechism_n as_o there_o be_v one_o head_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o they_o must_v all_o be_v unite_v in_o one_o body_n that_o there_o be_v not_o many_o church_n but_o one_o only_a and_o hereupon_o infer_v sadeel_n in_o refutat_fw-la thes_n posnan_n art_n 61._o that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v say_v of_o they_o see_v say_v he_o the_o true_a church_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o as_o often_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n shine_v open_o so_o often_o we_o say_v the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o our_o church_n be_v visible_a second_o because_o as_o we_o have_v see_v they_o speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o most_o principal_a article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n which_o they_o affirm_v to_o be_v the_o life_n soul_n and_o sum_n of_o their_o church_n three_o because_o they_o eftsoon_o speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o mean_v their_o own_o doctrine_n as_o by_o the_o name_n of_o gospeler_n they_o understand_v themselves_o as_o hereafter_o shall_v appear_v final_o because_o they_o profess_v that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o protestant_n lutheran_n or_o caluinist_n they_o understand_v a_o true_a christian_a sadeel_n lib._n de_fw-la peccat_fw-la remiss_a cap._n 1_o we_o that_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a catholic_n opinion_n d._n fulke_o lib._n the_o succest_n pag._n 186_o i_o will_v never_o deny_v that_o jewel_n be_v a_o noble_a protestant_n that_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o ad_fw-la cavillat_n staplet_n the_o community_n of_o christian_n who_o you_o call_v protestant_n hutten_n in_o expostul_n cum_fw-la erasmo_n against_o lutheran_n that_o be_v maintainer_n of_o the_o truth_n schusselburg_n tom_fw-mi 7._o catal._n haeret_fw-la pap._n 73_o a_o lutheran_n or_o true_a christian_a be_v etc._n etc._n and_o lib._n 2._o theol._n caluin_n fol._n 131_o lutheran_n that_o be_v true_a servant_n of_o christ_n beza_n count_v illyricum_n pag._n 168_o we_o perceive_v no_o difference_n between_o sacramentary_n and_o christian_n hospinian_n part_n 2._o histor_n fol._n 384_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o be_v the_o orthodoxal_a and_o danaeus_n count_v bellarm._n pag._n 311_o the_o caluinist_n that_o be_v christian_n pag._n 169_o a_o caluinist_n that_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n 10._o wherefore_o out_o of_o all_o wh●ch_n have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o and_o the_o former_a chapter_n i_o thus_o make_v my_o first_o demonstration_n to_o prove_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o first_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n if_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o at_o all_o when_o luther_n begin_v he_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o but_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_a for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o when_o luther_n begin_v he_o be_v the_o beginner_n of_o it_o the_o minor_a be_v manifest_a by_o the_o foresay_a confession_n of_o protestant_n wherein_o they_o plain_o say_v that_o it_o be_v substantial_o perish_v that_o every_o man_n follow_v a_o church_n and_o religion_n different_a from_o the_o protestant_n before_o luther_n arise_v chap._n iii_o 1._o the_o second_o demonstration_n wherewith_o we_o will_v prove_v luther_n to_o have_v be_v have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n we_o will_v take_v from_o the_o protestant_n confession_n that_o when_o luther_n first_o begin_v all_o the_o world_n and_o every_o man_n embrace_v a_o different_a religion_n luther_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o first_o come_v here_o see_v even_o by_o my_o case_n world_n the_o whole_a world_n how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o yet_o out_o of_o error_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o by_o long_a custom_n as_o it_o be_v change_v into_o nature_n and_o to_o 2._o this_o be_v write_v in_o his_o epitaph_n o_o christ_n custom_n long_o custom_n he_o show_v th●e_n when_o all_o the_o world_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o darkness_n and_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la captivit_fw-la babylon_n fol._n 72._o be_v to_o write_v against_o mass_n he_o say_v neither_o let_v it_o move_v thou_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n and_o custom_n and_o fol._n 68_o there_o be_v almost_o this_o day_n nothing_o more_o receive_v or_o more_o se●led_v in_o the_o church_n than_o that_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n against_o age_n so_o many_o age_n i_o set_v upon_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o custom_n of_o so_o many_o age_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o be_v so_o ingraft_v as_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o change_v almost_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o church_n all_o consent_v of_o all_o and_o lib._n the_o ●●r●g_n miss_n fol._n 244_o how_o often_o do_v my_o tremble_a hart_n quake_v and_o reprehend_v i_o object_v that_o their_o strong_a and_o only_a argument_n be_v thou_o only_o wise_a what_o do_v all_o err_v wise_a only_o luther_n wise_a be_v so_o many_o age_n ignorant_a behold_v how_o luther_n heart_n or_o conscience_n do_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o alone_o know_v protestancy_n and_o that_o for_o many_o age_n all_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o and_o in_o hi●_n table_n talk_v fol._n 10_o these_o cogitation_n be_v very_o troublesome_a to_o i_o thou_o only_o have_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n all_o other_o want_v it_o and_o lib._n cit_fw-la de_fw-fr missa_fw-la ●ol_fw-la 247_o the_o common_a people_n without_o doubt_n be_v most_o full_o persuade_v that_o all_o man_n be_v holpen_v by_o mass_n for_o it_o seem_v incredible_a that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v so_o forsake_v of_o god_n and_o fol._n 256_o it_o seem_v incredible_a to_o they_o that_o luther_n alone_o shall_v be_v wise_a contra_fw-la cochlaeum_n fol._n 408_o the_o sophister_n and_o monk_n have_v seduce_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o trust_v in_o work_n pope_n the_o whole_a world_n under_o the_o pope_n tom._n 3._o in_o psal_n 82._o fol._n 481_o in_o time_n past_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v under_o the_o pope_n dominion_n tom._n 5._o ●n_n 4._o galat._n fol._n 388_o in_o former_a age_n paul_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n tom._n 6._o in_o cap._n 11._o genes_n fol._n 130_o the_o wicked_a impostor_n so_o he_o term_v the_o pope_n have_v deceive_v all_o the_o word_n in_o c._n 37._o fol._n 506_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v horrible_o bring_v into_o madness_n and_o solly_n by_o papist_n in_o cap._n 19_o fol._n 238_o in_o the_o former_a age_n all_o thing_n lay_v in_o darkness_n tom._n 7._o epist_n ad_fw-la d._n sabaudiae_n fol._n 483_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o world_n be_v by_o the_o pope_n most_o miserable_o seduce_v &_o
continual_a descent_n thereof_o from_o christ_n can_v by_v such_o record_n be_v show_v moreover_o at_o sometym_n they_o not_o only_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a but_o also_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n teach_v the_o same_o in_o those_o parable_n of_o the_o barn_n and_o the_o net_n for_o out_o of_o they_o caluin_n 4._o visible_a protestant_n confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a institut_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 13._o infer_v that_o the_o lord_n pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v vex_v with_o this_o evil_a till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v burden_v with_o the_o mixture_n of_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 471._o and_o other_o but_o that_o church_n which_o contain_v the_o wicked_a be_v the_o visible_a church_n for_o the_o invisible_a they_o will_v have_v to_o hold_v only_o the_o good_a the_o scripture_n therefore_o testify_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v ever_o be_v yea_o protestant_n now_o and_o then_o take_v it_o so_o ill_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n perish_v for_o many_o age_n that_o d._n sutlive_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o exception_n cap._n 7._o say_v that_o bellarmine_n lie_v in_o say_v so_o and_o d._n whitaker_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la pag_n 472._o say_v we_o slander_v they_o when_o we_o affirm_v they_o put_v such_o a_o church_n as_o at_o sometime_o can_v be_v see_v of_o none_o and_o say_v that_o in_o this_o matter_n there_o be_v no_o controversy_n about_o the_o thing_n but_o about_o the_o manner_n to_o wit_n no_o question_n whither_o the_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a or_o no_o but_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v visible_a because_o forsooth_o we_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v at_o all_o time_n visible_a clear_o and_o of_o all_o man_n and_o they_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v at_o sometime_o visible_a but_o obscure_o and_o of_o few_o the_o like_a say_v kemnice_n in_o his_o common_a place_n title_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 3._o reineccius_n in_o the_o 4._o tome_fw-mi of_o his_o armour_n cap._n 8._o and_o d._n morton_n in_o the_o 1._o part_n of_o his_o apology_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 13._o but_o yet_o that_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o neither_o bely_v nor_o slander_v they_o be_v manifest_a by_o what_o we_o have_v rehearse_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n before_o go_v in_o the_o 5._o number_n and_o those_o that_o follow_v to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o caluin_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o institution_n set_v the_o state_n of_o this_o question_n betwixt_o we_o &_o protestant_n in_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o hinge_n hang_v our_o controversy_n that_o they_o papist_n will_v have_v the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appear_v and_o be_v visible_a at_o all_o time_n on_o the_o contrary_n we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v consist_v of_o no_o apparent_a form_n and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o protestant_n will_v constant_o agree_v which_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v always_o visible_a to_o some_o either_o of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o it_o or_o out_o of_o it_o that_o the_o debate_n may_v remain_v only_o about_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n church_n why_o protestant_n contradict_v themselves_o about_o the_o invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n whither_o the_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n appear_v be_v see_v of_o any_o either_o protestant_n or_o other_o but_o protestant_n stand_v betwixt_o truth_n and_o lie_n while_o they_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n especial_o as_o it_o be_v describe_v in_o scripture_n confess_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v visible_a not_o only_o to_o her_o child_n but_o to_o other_o also_o but_o when_o they_o look_v back_o upon_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o own_o church_n before_o luther_n begin_v be_v compel_v to_o deny_v the_o same_o as_o before_o we_o most_o evident_o show_v which_o thing_n alone_o if_o it_o be_v well_o consider_v will_v discover_v sufficient_o that_o in_o their_o own_o conscience_n they_o acknowledge_v their_o church_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n church_n inuisibility_n contrary_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o five_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a because_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v institute_v of_o god_n whereof_o one_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v worship_v he_o after_o that_o entire_a manner_n of_o worship_n which_o man_n be_v to_o give_v which_o be_v to_o honour_n god_n not_o only_o with_o heart_n and_o mind_n but_o also_o with_o tongue_n and_o deed_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a and_o caluin_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o a_o hollander_n many_o way_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n must_v render_v to_o god_n not_o only_o inward_a but_o also_o outward_a worship_n but_o a_o invisible_a church_n worship_v god_n only_o in_o heart_n and_o mind_n as_o whitaker_n word_n be_v another_o end_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o feed_v her_o child_n with_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o correct_v and_o govern_v they_o by_o discipline_n and_o to_o defend_v they_o from_o enemy_n as_o also_o be_v manifest_a and_o scripture_n teach_v which_o office_n a_o church_n which_o neither_o see_v her_o child_n nor_o be_v see_v of_o they_o can_v perform_v likewise_o another_o end_n be_v to_o convert_v the_o world_n and_o those_o who_o be_v out_o of_o she_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o she_o can_v no_o way_n do_v if_o neither_o her_o doctrine_n nor_o example_n be_v see_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o as_o luther_n say_v upon_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o isaias_n tom_n 4._o fol._n 234_o the_o church_n be_v in_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o convert_n other_o to_o the_o faith_n society_n inuisibility_n against_o the_o nature_n of_o human_a society_n 8._o six_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o society_n of_o man_n among_o themselves_o for_o to_o be_v invisible_a for_o as_o man_n consist_v of_o a_o body_n which_o be_v visible_a by_o the_o colour_n and_o of_o a_o soul_n which_o be_v see_v by_o the_o action_n thereof_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o society_n in_o which_o they_o join_v be_v visible_a either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o some_o other_o thing_n whereupon_o well_o say_v s._n augustin_n 11._o li._n 19_o count_n faust_n c._n 11._o man_n can_v join_v in_o any_o religion_n true_a or_o false_a unless_o they_o be_v bind_v together_o by_o some_o fellowship_n of_o visible_a sign_n or_o sacrament_n and_o the_o same_o confess_v gerlachius_n in_o his_o 23._o disput_fw-la of_o the_o church_n pag._n 995._o saying_n we_o willing_o confess_v &_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v except_o there_o be_v some_o outward_a and_o visible_a sign_n by_o common_a communion_n and_o participation_n whereof_o society_n among_o man_n may_v consist_v and_o seavent_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o example_n of_o all_o other_o society_n among_o man_n whither_o religious_a or_o profane_a whereof_o none_o consist_v in_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v altogether_o invisible_a and_o whereby_o the_o member_n of_o that_o society_n can_v be_v know_v the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o 9_o seaventh_o church_n against_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o continuance_n and_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n to_o be_v visible_a for_o if_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o former_a age_n have_v not_o be_v see_v of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o this_o age_n how_o can_v the_o church_n of_o this_o age_n have_v receive_v the_o faith_n we_o ask_v therefore_o how_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o our_o age_n learn_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o a_o other_o age_n if_o in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n she_o be_v so_o invisible_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v they_o confess_v protestant_n scare_v with_o this_o question_n like_o man_n with_o a_o thunder_n clap_v leap_v a_o sunder_o and_o every_o one_o answer_v not_o what_o he_o know_v or_o can_v prove_v but_o what_o seem_v to_o he_o least_o absurd_a that_o hereby_o we_o may_v perceive_v that_o all_o their_o talk_n of_o their_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n time_n be_v but_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v fable_n and_o vain_a speech_n or_o fancy_n and_o fiction_n of_o man_n speak_v without_o either_o testimony_n or_o reason_n some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o before_o luther_n their_o church_n receive_v the_o faith_n immediate_o from_o god_n alone_o during_o popery_n say_v boysseul_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o spondé_n pag._n 75_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v faith_n without_o a_o preacher_n miraculous_o protestant_n church_n teach_v miraculous_o the_o same_o also_o intimate_a junius_n cont._n 4._o lib._n
of_o the_o author_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n two_o book_n write_a first_o in_o latin_a by_o r._n s._n doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o now_o review_v by_o the_o author_n and_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o vv._n bas_n every_o thing_n must_v be_v reduce_v to_o its_o beginning_n tertull._n prescript_n cap._n 20._o permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m.dc.xxi_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o worke._n if_o both_o luther_n himself_o and_o the_o famous_a protestant's_n of_o all_o sort_n have_v many_o way_n most_o plain_o and_o most_o free_o confess_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n as_o in_o this_o work_n do_v manifest_o appear_v then_o undoubted_o he_o be_v so_o and_o if_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o beginner_n thereof_o assure_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n of_o christ._n read_v therefore_o and_o judge_v indifferent_o and_o thereby_o a_o end_n may_v be_v make_v of_o all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n betwixt_o the_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n the_o preface_n of_o the_o author_n to_o the_o reader_n wherein_o the_o manner_n and_o profit_n of_o this_o work_n be_v declare_v there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o question_n gentle_a reader_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n the_o one_o kind_n be_v of_o fact_n to_o wit_n whether_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o religion_n whether_o before_o he_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o have_v pastor_n whether_o he_o and_o the_o first_o protestant_n preacher_n be_v send_v to_o preach_v protestancy_n and_o the_o li●e_z the_o other_o kind_n of_o question_n be_v of_o christ_n doctrine_n or_o law_n for_o example_n whether_o christ_n teach_v good_a work_n do_v justify_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n meritorious_a and_o such_o other_o doctrine_n why_o a_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n be_v handle_v rather_o they_o of_o doctrine_n at_o this_o present_a i_o treat_v not_o of_o this_o second_o kind_n of_o question_n but_o only_o of_o the_o former_a and_o that_o for_o three_o cause_n first_o the_o question_n of_o doctrine_n be_v innumerable_a but_o the_o question_n of_o fact_n few_o and_o many_o have_v handle_v they_o and_o that_o most_o exact_o but_o these_o few_o have_v touch_v and_o for_o aught_o that_o i_o know_v none_o of_o purpose_n have_v hitherto_o write_v of_o the_o author_n of_o protestancy_n and_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o i_o intend_v to_o write_v second_o there_o be_v few_o question_n of_o doctrine_n of_o that_o nature_n that_o all_o other_o controversy_n of_o faith_n depend_v upon_o they_o but_o the_o most_o question_n of_o fact_n be_v such_o as_o if_o they_o be_v well_o decide_v all_o other_o controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v at_o a_o end_n such_o kind_n of_o question_n this_o especial_o be_v which_o now_o i_o handle_v whether_o luther_n be_v author_n and_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n for_o if_o it_o be_v make_v manifest_a that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n and_o beginner_n of_o it_o every_o one_o will_v straihgt_v see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n church_n &_o religion_n but_o luther_n devise_n and_o invention_n three_o in_o question_n of_o doctrine_n or_o law_n protestant_n want_v not_o some_o pretext_n of_o scripture_n as_o neither_o any_o heretic_n want_v and_o therefore_o diverse_a time_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o debate_v these_o kind_n of_o question_n in_o which_o as_o tertullian_n say_v they_o pretend_v scripture_n 15._o prescrip_n c._n 15._o and_o with_o this_o their_o boldness_n shake_v some_o and_o in_o the_o dispute_n weary_a the_o constant_a catch_v the_o weak_a &_o send_v away_o the_o midal●_n sort_n with_o scruple_n and_o doubt_n but_o in_o question_n of_o fact_n they_o be_v destitute_a not_o only_o of_o all_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n unless_o it_o be_v some_o most_o vain_a but_o also_o of_o all_o testimony_n of_o man_n and_o help_n of_o reason_n and_o stand_v only_o upon_o their_o own_o say_n &_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o sometime_o also_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o therefore_o be_v bring_v to_o debate_v these_o kind_n of_o question_n no_o more_o willing_o then_o be_v a_o thief_n to_o his_o trial_n neither_o do_v they_o in_o these_o disput_v either_o weary_a the_o constant_a or_o catch_v the_o weak_a but_o show_v their_o own_o weakness_n and_o wilfullnes_n unto_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o minister_n be_v so_o loath_a to_o dispute_v of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n include_v many_o question_n of_o fact_n as_o of_o antiquity_n succession_n continuance_n visibility_n mission_n ordination_n of_o pastor_n and_o such_o like_a in_o which_o point_v there_o be_v little_a colour_n or_o show_v on_o their_o part_n 2._o four_o protestant_n exact_v more_o difficult_a poofe_n in_o question_n of_o doctrine_n than_o they_o can_v demand_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n for_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n speak_v nothing_o they_o must_v be_v content_a with_o testimony_n of_o man_n against_o who_o no_o just_a exception_n can_v be_v make_v or_o they_o must_v refuse_v all_o trial_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o question_n but_o in_o controversy_n of_o doctrine_n they_o account_v those_o only_a to_o be_v lawful_a proof_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v these_o satisfy_v they_o unless_o they_o be_v plain_a &_o 11._o &_o melan._n &_o brent_n in_o hospin_n fol._n 107._o colloq_fw-la ratisb_n sess_v 11._o express_v and_o as_o they_o say_v word_n slad_n word_n vor_v respon_n ad_fw-la slad_n for_o word_n contain_v that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n or_o at_o least_o be_v so_o pregnant_a and_o strong_a that_o they_o 4._o they_o luth._o de_fw-la seru_fw-la arbitr_n fol._n 440._o lib._n 6._o confess_v c._n 4._o stop_n all_o m●ns_n mouth_n that_o they_o can_v gainsay_v nothing_o for_o it_o be_v the_o common_a fault_n of_o protestant_n which_o s._n augustin_n say_v himself_o be_v guilty_a of_o while_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o they_o will_v be_v as_o certain_a of_o all_o thing_n as_o that_o seven_o and_o three_o make_v ten_o nay_o they_o yield_v not_o always_o to_o these_o kind_n of_o proof_n for_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o expressy_a more_o plain_o more_o literal_o than_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o only_o by_o faith_n that_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n give_v with_o his_o hand_n to_o his_o apostle_n after_o his_o last_o supper_n be_v his_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o such_o like_a &_o yet_o the_o protestant_n yield_v not_o to_o these_o kind_n of_o testimony_n but_o devise_v figure_n and_o shift_n to_o delude_v they_o catholic_n proof_n in_o controversy_n of_o doctrine_n be_v certain_o theological_a demonstration_n because_o they_o be_v clear_o draw_v from_o the_o proper_a principle_n of_o divinity_n to_o wit_n from_o clear_a word_n of_o god_n confirm_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unanimous_a exposition_n of_o the_o father_n which_o kind_n of_o proof_n be_v as_o great_a and_o strong_a as_o either_o divinity_n or_o law_n or_o any_o science_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v found_v in_o word_n either_o do_v afford_v or_o the_o nature_n of_o any_o law_n or_o science_n which_o be_v ground_v in_o word_n as_o divinity_n be_v can_v bear_v or_o afford_v and_o as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v well_o it_o be_v stark_o madness_n to_o exact_v any_o other_o kind_n of_o proof_n of_o any_o profession_n than_o the_o nature_n thereof_o can_v afford_v 1._o 1._o eth._n 1._o but_o because_o heretic_n expound_v what_o word_n soever_o as_o they_o listen_v and_o little_o set_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o father_n and_o the_o unlearned_a hardly_o perceive_v what_o kind_n of_o proof_n be_v a_o theological_a demonstration_n &_o such_o as_o divinity_n can_v afford_v no_o great_a or_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n ought_v to_o be_v therefore_o with_o they_o catholik_o proof_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n albeit_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v theological_a demonstration_n take_v little_a effect_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n catholic_a proof_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v not_o only_o theological_a but_o also_o that_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v mathematical_a demonstration_n because_o they_o consist_v of_o one_o principle_n which_o be_v ground_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o divinity_n to_o wit_v the_o word_n of_o god_n together_o with_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n but_o also_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n which_o kind_n of_o principle_n these_o be_v that_o god_n church_n have_v always_o he_o
the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o matter_n a_o man_n may_v chance_v to_o err_v &_o slip_v 5._o august_n l._n 11._o cont_n faust_n c._n 5._o or_o else_o in_o such_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o be_v in_o time_n or_o place_n far_o distant_a from_o they_o so_o that_o themselves_o can_v not_o search_v the_o truth_n but_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o other_o such_o a_o question_n be_v that_o of_o pope_n joane_n in_o which_o protestant_n cite_v no_o catholic_a author_n which_o live_v not_o some_o age_n after_o that_o time_n wherein_o pope_n joan_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v or_o if_o they_o produce_v any_o catholic_a author_n in_o any_o matter_n of_o fact_n the_o truth_n whereof_o he_o may_v have_v try_v either_o he_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n or_o the_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o it_o turn_v to_o no_o prejudice_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o we_o here_o produce_v protestant_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n &_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o they_o can_v most_o easy_o know_v for_o what_o be_v more_o easy_a then_o for_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n to_o try_v either_o then_o or_o ever_o since_o whether_o when_o he_o first_o begin_v there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n any_o protestant_a company_n whether_o it_o be_v visible_a whether_o it_o have_v pastor_n and_o the_o like_a for_o who_o can_v think_v that_o only_o the_o protestant_a company_n can_v lie_v so_o close_o hide_v that_o neither_o in_o all_o luther_n time_n or_o ever_o since_o either_o the_o be_v or_o the_o estate_n or_o condition_n or_o place_n or_o pastor_n or_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o thereof_o can_v be_v espy_v out_o of_o so_o many_o arguse_n which_o now_o in_o one_o whole_a age_n have_v sift_v all_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n to_o find_v it_o out_o and_o beside_o this_o be_v such_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n as_o upon_o the_o decision_n thereof_o a_o end_n may_v be_v make_v of_o all_o controversy_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n for_o as_o i_o say_v before_o if_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o be_v follow_v of_o christian_n note_n note_n but_o to_o be_v forsake_v &_o detest_a to_o which_o i_o add_v now_o that_o if_o luther_n himself_o &_o such_o &_o so_o many_o learned_a &_o famous_a protestant_n as_o i_o have_v cite_v do_v by_o many_o way_n &_o so_o plain_o confess_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n thereof_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o author_n of_o it_o for_o i_o allege_v not_o man_n of_o small_a credit_n among_o protestant_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n with_o they_o nor_o a_o few_o but_o many_o nor_o of_o one_o nation_n alone_o but_o of_o diverse_a to_o wit_n german_n italian_n french_a english_a scot_n fleming_n and_o other_o nor_o protestant_n of_o one_o sort_n or_o sect_n but_o of_o all_o three_o namely_o lutheran_n sacramentary_n and_o english_a protestant_n so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n in_o this_o matter_n either_o for_o want_v of_o knowledge_n because_o they_o be_v many_o and_o learned_a &_o of_o different_a country_n and_o most_o diligent_a in_o search_v the_o matter_n and_o the_o matter_n itself_o most_o easy_a nor_o for_o want_v of_o good_a will_n towards_o the_o cause_n because_o they_o be_v all_o most_o earnest_a protestant_n and_o to_o refuse_v the_o testimony_n of_o such_o witness_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o their_o own_o time_n so_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v and_o so_o diligent_o search_v of_o they_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o then_o obstinate_o to_o refuse_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n so_o important_a to_o be_v know_v and_o whereby_o may_v be_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o contention_n in_o religion_n wherefore_o let_v protestant_n say_v as_o they_o please_v note_n note_n that_o in_o question_n of_o doctrine_n they_o will_v not_o depend_v upon_o luther_n caluin_n or_o any_o one_o or_o all_o their_o doctor_n together_o but_o upon_o the_o scripture_n alone_o nevertheless_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n say_v nothing_o such_o as_o this_o be_v for_o the_o scripture_n tell_v not_o what_o be_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n when_o luther_n begin_v in_o what_o place_n it_o be_v what_o pastor_n it_o have_v who_o see_v it_o and_o the_o like_a either_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o they_o refuse_v all_o trial_n &_o knowledge_n of_o so_o important_a a_o truth_n or_o they_o must_v give_v credit_n to_o the_o deposition_n of_o sufficient_a witness_n and_o if_o ever_o man_n be_v or_o can_v be_v sufficient_a witness_n of_o any_o matter_n of_o fact_n luther_n and_o those_o protestant_n which_o here_o i_o produce_v be_v sufficient_a witness_n of_o that_o which_o i_o bring_v they_o for_o to_o testify_v and_o thus_o much_o touch_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o prove_v luther_n to_o have_v be_v the_o founder_n of_o protestant_a religion_n only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n allege_v why_o so_o many_o protestant_n testimony_n be_v allege_v 10._o as_o for_o the_o reason_n why_o i_o allege_v so_o many_o protestant_n that_o be_v that_o it_o many_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o private_a testimony_n of_o some_o one_o or_o few_o but_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o they_o all_o or_o at_o least_o the_o common_a sentence_n of_o many_o of_o they_o and_o if_o i_o seem_v to_o any_o catholic_a over_o tedious_a in_o heap_v up_o so_o many_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n i_o pray_v he_o to_o consider_v that_o i_o write_v not_o this_o book_n to_o catholic_n to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n who_o i_o know_v to_o that_o end_n do_v not_o need_v the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n but_o that_o i_o write_v it_o partly_o to_o catholic_n for_o to_o furnish_v they_o with_o store_n of_o protestant_n testimony_n to_o stop_n their_o mouth_n and_o to_o show_v they_o that_o they_o be_v right_a heretic_n that_o be_v condemn_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n to_o which_o end_n a_o few_o testimony_n of_o they_o will_v not_o suffice_v and_o therefore_o to_o such_o as_o intend_v this_o end_n the_o multitude_n of_o testimony_n will_v not_o be_v troublesome_a for_o who_o that_o indeavour_v to_o vanquish_v most_o obstinate_a enemy_n will_v complain_v of_o the_o abundance_n of_o good_a soldier_n whereof_o he_o may_v make_v choice_n and_o if_o i_o have_v rehearse_v only_o some_o few_o testimony_n and_o name_v the_o place_n where_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v find_v some_o will_v have_v cavilled_a as_o m._n jewel_n do_v against_o d._n harding_n that_o i_o have_v cite_v dumb_a witness_n beside_o see_v the_o judgment_n of_o man_n be_v diverse_a it_o may_v fall_v out_o that_o what_o kind_n of_o testimony_n seem_v strong_a &_o forcible_a to_o some_o other_o acount_v but_o weak_a and_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v behofull_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o store-house_n of_o protestant_n testimony_n that_o every_o one_o may_v take_v what_o weapon_n he_o think_v fit_a for_o he_o &_o use_v it_o against_o they_o but_o especial_o i_o gather_v these_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n for_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o that_o by_o their_o own_o man_n judgement_n i_o may_v withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o error_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_v not_o so_o fearful_a to_o bring_v too_o many_o for_o catholic_n as_o careful_a to_o provide_v enough_o for_o protestant_n in_o which_o i_o can_v hardly_o offend_v by_o multitude_n for_o as_o s._n 1._o s._n lib._n 1._o vigil_n say_v man_n mind_n possess_v with_o the_o error_n of_o a_o false_a opinion_n be_v hard_a and_o slow_a to_o perceive_v truth_n with_o how_o many_o witness_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v urge_v thereto_o emerit_fw-la thereto_o de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la cum_fw-la emerit_fw-la or_o as_o patient_n as_o lib._n the_o patient_n tertullian_n write_v much_o talk_n in_o matter_n of_o edification_n be_v not_o foul_a if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o be_v foul_a and_o jou._n and_o lib._n 1._o cont_n jou._n s._n hierom_n delay_n be_v no_o loss_n when_o by_o delay_n the_o victory_n be_v more_o assure_v whereupon_o s._n augustin_n counsele_v we_o not_o to_o regard_v and_o delay_v whatsoever_o so_o we_o bring_v good_a proof_n of_o what_o we_o say_v beside_o 12._o beside_o whi._n count_v 295._o c._n 17._o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr script_n c._n 11._o sect_n sadeel_n in_o refut_o posnan_n c._n 12._o protestant_n deny_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o by_o one_o or_o few_o though_o they_o be_v pastor_n and_o 7._o and_o white_a in_o defence_n of_o his_o way_n c._n 7._o write_v that_o m._n brierly_n in_o his_o protestant_n apology_n although_o it_o be_v stuff_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o
of_o heretic_n this_o in_o sum_n i_o will_v say_v heretic_n be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v deal_v with_o all_o than_o infidel_n 〈◊〉_d jew_n caluin_n also_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o institution_n cap._n 15._o number_n 1._o right_o augustin_n deny_v heretic_n have_v the_o same_o foundation_n with_o the_o godly_a albeit_o they_o preach_v t●●_n name_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o instruction_n against_o the_o libertine_n that_o we_o may_v speak_v proper_o heretic_n be_v not_o o●ly_o like_a to_o wolf_n or_o thief_n but_o much_o worse_o beza_n in_o his_o boo●_n of_o punish_v heretic_n if_o one_o term_v heretic_n saithle●_n apostatas_fw-la he_o shall_v give_v they_o their_o due_a title_n and_o again_o heretic_n affirm_v christ_n in_o word_n and_o deny_v he_o indeed_o danaeus_n in_o his_o 5._o controversy_n and_o 691._o pag._n a_o heretic_n condemn_v by_o lawful_a judgement_n and_o actual_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n nor_o of_o the_o invisible_a neither_o actual_o or_o apparent_o so_o long_o as_o he_o remain_v in_o that_o state_n polanus_fw-la in_o his_o 7._o book_n which_o he_o term_v syntagma_n cap._n 5._o heretic_n while_o they_o remain_v such_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o vorstius_n in_o his_o anti-bellarmin_a pag._n 79._o the_o ghospeller_n do_v esteem_n antichrist_n in_o common_a to_o be_v every_o heretic_n who_o oppose_v himself_o either_o open_o and_o plain_o or_o close_o and_o indirect_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o 121._o pag._n there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n touch_v heretic_n schismatic_n and_o apostatas_fw-la proper_o and_o true_o so_o call_v that_o they_o be_v altogether_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n thus_o foreign_a protestant_n in_o england_n protestant_n english_a protestant_n his_o majesty_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cardinal_n peron_n write_v by_o casaubon_n the_o king_n damn_v and_o detest_v those_o who_o either_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o say_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o be_v become_v heretic_n or_o from_o the_o communion_n and_o be_v become_v schismatic_n the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 3._o divis_fw-la 3._o we_o condemn_v all_o sort_n of_o the_o old_a heretic_n as_o the_o arian_n the_o eutichian_o &c._n &c._n and_o short_o all_o they_o that_o have_v a_o wicked_a opinion_n either_o of_o god_n the_o father_n or_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o any_o other_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v confute_v by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n we_o plain_o pronounce_v they_o for_o damnable_a and_o detestable_a person_n and_o defy_v they_o even_o to_o the_o devil_n d._n whitaker_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o controversy_n if_o we_o be_v heretic_n it_o be_v reason_n they_o shall_v warn_v all_o they_o to_o fly_v from_o us._n and_o controver_n 2._o question_n 1._o cap._n 4._o that_o he_o prove_v heretic_n and_o apostatas_fw-la and_o schismatic_n not_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n make_v nothing_o against_o us._n none_o of_o our_o man_n ever_o teach_v that_o the_o like_a he_o have_v question_n 5._o cap._n 1._o and_o 18._o d._n sutlive_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 1._o heretic_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n d._n morton_n in_o his_o apology_n 1._o part_n 1._o book_n cap._n 3_o affirm_v that_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v of_o the_o church_n in_o truth_n but_o in_o name_n not_o indeed_o but_o equivocal_o final_o d._n white_n in_o his_o way_n to_o the_o church_n pag_n 110._o all_o heretic_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o some_o thing_n and_o yet_o we_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o way_n cap._n 8._o sect_n 1._o there_o be_v little_a or_o no_o difference_n between_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o apostata_fw-la or_o heretic_n 4._o the_o same_o censure_n they_o sometime_o give_v of_o schismatic_n schismatik_n they_o exclude_v schismatik_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o majesty_n d._n whitaker_n and_o vorstius_n already_o rehearse_v beside_o luther_n in_o his_o great_a catechism_n tom_n 5._o pag._n 628._o affirm_v the_o sense_n of_o that_o article_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v this_o i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v on_o earth_n a_o little_a congregation_n of_o saint_n agree_v in_o all_o thing_n without_o sect_n or_o schism_n and_o melancthon_n in_o his_o book_n against_o swenfeild_n tom_n 2._o lutheran_n lutheran_n pag._n 201._o neither_o be_v there_o more_o than_o one_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v this_o company_n consist_v of_o diverse_a sect_n solomon_n gesnerus_fw-la in_o his_o common_a place_n the_o 24._o place_n of_o the_o church_n catholik_o be_v opposite_a to_o schismatic_n &_o heretic_n the_o same_o teach_v schusselburg_n in_o his_o 8._o tome_fw-mi of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n pag._n 726._o 727._o among_o the_o sacramentary_n the_o swisser_n in_o their_o confession_n sacramentary_n sacramentary_n article_n 17._o do_v thus_o profess_v we_o so_o much_o esteem_v the_o communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o we_o teach_v that_o those_o can_v live_v before_o god_n who_o communicate_v not_o with_o his_o true_a church_n and_o the_o french_a protestant_n in_o they_o article_n 26._o we_o believe_v that_o none_o can_v lawful_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o assembly_n bullinger_n in_o his_o epitome_n or_o compendium_n of_o faith_n 6._o book_n 11._o cap_n they_o be_v out_o of_o this_o church_n wh●_n upon_o envy_n or_o contention_n separate_v themselves_o from_o she_o &_o without_o cause_n will_v have_v some_o thing_n peculiar_a to_o themselves_o musculus_fw-la also_o in_o his_o common_a place_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n the_o unity_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v bastard_n and_o divide_v true_o entire_a and_o catholic_a unity_n be_v not_o among_o schismatic_n and_o in_o the_o title_n of_o schismatic_n a_o schismatic_n put_v himself_o in_o danger_n of_o loss_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o by_o that_o departure_n he_o be_v not_o only_o separate_v and_o divide_v from_o that_o ecclesiastical_a and_o external_a society_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o also_o from_o participation_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n caluin_n likewise_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n we_o do_v profess_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o be_v describe_v by_o s._n paul_n to_o be_v most_o dear_a unto_o we_o and_o we_o accurse_v all_o they_o that_o shall_v any_o way_n violate_v it_o and_o in_o his_o four_o book_n of_o institution_n chap._n 1._o numb_a 2_o unless_o under_o christ_n our_o head_n we_o be_v unite_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o member_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o we_o of_o the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n for_o we_o can_v have_v two_o or_o three_o church_n unless_o christ_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n and_o num_fw-la 4._o out_o of_o the_o lap_n the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n departure_n from_o thence_o be_v always_o pernicious_a again_o numb_a 10_o god_n make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o the_o communion_n with_o his_o church_n as_o he_o hold_v he_o for_o a_o renagate_n and_o fugitive_n whosoever_o obstinate_o separate_v himself_o from_o any_o christian_a society_n which_o retain_v the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o forsake_v of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o denial_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n the_o like_a doctrine_n he_o deliver_v in_o his_o catechism_n upon_o the_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 1._o and_o other_o where_o polanus_fw-la in_o his_o thesis_n part_v 2._o say_v schismatical_a church_n be_v to_o be_v forsake_v and_o bucanus_n in_o his_o place_n loc_fw-la 41._o of_o the_o church_n quest_n 33._o avouch_v schismatik_n to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o quest_n 5._o that_o they_o be_v not_o univocal_o a_o church_n that_o be_v they_o have_v not_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o a_o church_n the_o same_o say_v danaeus_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o antichrist_n cap._n 17._o and_o in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 5._o write_v thus_o schismatic_n actual_o excommunicate_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o lawful_a sentence_n be_v no_o more_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o say_v he_o the_o mark_n that_o you_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v this_o that_o you_o outward_o profess_v the_o faith_n and_o communicate_v in_o sacrament_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o add_v that_o such_o be_v neither_o actual_o of_o the_o invisible_a church_n but_o only_o in_o possibility_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n liken_v suc●_n to_o
write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o monitory_a epistle_n pag._n 97._o protestant's_n english_a protestant's_n in_o latin_a i_o call_v god_n to_o witness_v that_o i_o hold_v he_o not_o for_o a_o christian_n who_o in_o this_o learned_a age_n believe_v that_o to_o wit_n that_o enoch_n and_o elias_n be_v to_o come_v and_o d._n morton_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o protestant_n apology_n lib._n 4._o c._n 2._o sect_n 3._o after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o in_o a_o church_n albeit_o corrupt_v with_o error_n and_o superstition_n yet_o if_o it_o do_v not_o ruinate_v the_o foundation_n the_o erroneous_a &_o superstitious_a professor_n may_v be_v save_v add_v which_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v so_o understand_v as_o that_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o knowledge_n but_o from_o ignorance_n which_o ignorance_n be_v not_o affect_v but_o simple_a thus_o we_o see_v that_o protestant_n sometime_o confess_v that_o true_a faith_n be_v like_o a_o grain_n or_o mathematical_a point_n which_o can_v be_v part_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v one_o copulative_a and_o can_v be_v divide_v that_o who_o so_o obstinate_o deni_v one_o article_n believe_v true_o none_o that_o the_o obstinate_a denial_n of_o any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o damn_v or_o to_o make_v a_o heretik_a and_o no_o brother_n of_o the_o faithful_a or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o final_o that_o she_o be_v no_o true_a church_n who_o wilful_o maintain_v any_o one_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o gospel_n or_o word_n of_o god_n which_o indeed_o be_v most_o true_a and_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o catholik_o and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n protestant_n will_v constant_o stand_v unto_o it_o 7._o by_o all_o which_o have_v be_v rehearse_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o protestant_n it_o appear_v how_o many_o sort_n of_o christian_n protestant_n do_v sometime_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n namely_o papist_n anabaptist_n arian_n all_o heretic_n all_o schismatik_n all_o those_o who_o deny_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o final_o all_o who_o obstinate_o deny_v any_o point_n whatsoever_o of_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o how_o many_o thing_n they_o sometime_o require_v to_o the_o make_n and_o be_v of_o a_o protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o obstinate_o dissent_v in_o none_o to_o which_o their_o doctrine_n if_o they_o will_v as_o i_o have_v say_v always_o constant_o stand_v it_o will_v easy_o appear_v first_o how_o small_a a_o company_n the_o protestant_n church_n be_v and_o how_o little_a it_o be_v spread_v through_o the_o world_n and_o much_o less_o catholic_a or_o universal_a see_v there_o be_v no_o province_n nor_o scarce_o any_o city_n in_o which_o all_o protestant_n agree_v among_o themselves_o in_o all_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n second_o it_o will_v easy_o appear_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v never_o before_o luther_n see_v there_o be_v no_o appearance_n that_o before_o he_o there_o be_v any_o company_n of_o christian_n who_o in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n agree_v with_o protestant_n but_o protestant_n as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o preface_n accommodate_v their_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n to_o time_n and_o occasion_n and_o the_o time_n when_o they_o deny_v papist_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v when_o they_o exhort_v they_o to_o leave_v the_o roman_a church_n or_o excuse_v their_o own_o revolt_n from_o she_o or_o when_o they_o dehort_v other_o from_o return_v to_o she_o for_o at_o all_o these_o time_n it_o serve_v to_o their_o purpose_n to_o deny_v that_o papist_n be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n which_o at_o other_o time_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n they_o be_v content_a to_o grant_v and_o the_o time_n when_o they_o exclude_v anabaptist_n arian_n heretic_n schismatik_n and_o all_o that_o deny_v either_o fundamental_a or_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v when_o either_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n enforce_v they_o thereto_o or_o when_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o acknowledge_v such_o ugly_a monster_n for_o brethren_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o will_v exhort_v such_o as_o have_v leave_v their_o company_n to_o return_v unto_o they_o and_o keep_v other_o from_o forsake_v they_o or_o final_o will_v brag_v of_o the_o agreement_n and_o purity_n in_o doctrine_n of_o their_o company_n for_o at_o those_o time_n it_o serve_v their_o turn_n to_o renounce_v all_o the_o foresay_a kind_n of_o man_n who_o at_o other_o time_n especial_o when_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o who_o be_v of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n they_o be_v most_o willing_a to_o receive_v as_o their_o kind_a brethren_n diligent_o scrape_v &_o gather_v such_o shred_n and_o clout_n when_o they_o perceive_v their_o own_o nakedness_n and_o beggary_n which_o themselves_o when_o they_o think_v they_o be_v rich_a and_o have_v no_o need_n thereof_o most_o disdainful_o cast_v on_o the_o dunghill_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v chap._n ii_o that_o protestant_n sometime_o account_v papist_n for_o member_n of_o their_o church_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n we_o have_v see_v how_o spare_v protestant_n sometym_n be_v in_o admit_v other_o into_o their_o church_n now_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o liberal_a they_o be_v at_o other_o time_n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o grant_v not_o only_o all_o those_o who_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n they_o reject_v but_o also_o their_o profess_a enemy_n idolater_n infidel_n atheist_n antichrist_n himself_o and_o all_o whosoever_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n impugn_v the_o deed_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o brethren_n their_o fellow_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n this_o we_o will_v show_v concern_v the_o papist_n in_o this_o chapter_n and_o of_o the_o other_o afterward_o 1._o that_o protestant_n sometime_o do_v acknowledge_v papist_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v manifest_a first_o by_o their_o open_a confession_n thereof_o lutheran_n lutheran_n for_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o their_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n speak_v of_o themselves_o and_o papist_n christ_n papist_n serve_v under_o christ_n they_o say_v we_o be_v all_o soldier_n under_o one_o christ_n and_o luther_n in_o his_o epistle_n against_o the_o anabaptist_n as_o caluin_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o chaunter_n of_o lion_n and_o d._n whitaker_n in_o the_o place_n hereafter_o cite_v do_v confess_v write_v popery_n the_o kernel_n of_o christianity_n in_o popery_n that_o in_o popery_n be_v true_a christianity_n yea_o the_o kernel_n of_o christianity_n and_o many_o pious_a and_o great_a saint_n again_o if_o christianity_n be_v under_o the_o pope_n than_o it_o must_v be_v the_o body_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o 28._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n we_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n among_o the_o papist_n because_o they_o have_v baptism_n absolution_n the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o many_o godly_a man_n be_v among_o they_o caluin_n in_o his_o 140._o epistle_n to_o sozi●_n i_o think_v i_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o in_o popery_n there_o remain_v some_o church_n albeit_o half_o destroy_v and_o if_o you_o will_v break_v and_o deform_v and_o upon_o the_o 2._o c●ap_n of_o the_o 2_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o christ_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n i_o confess_v it_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n rule_v and_o he_o call_v it_o the_o very_a sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la reform_v pag._n 332._o sacramentary_n sacramentary_n ●ayth_o that_o s_n paul_n affirm_v that_o antichrist_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o pope_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o lib._n de_fw-la scandalis_fw-la pag._n 103_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o god_n temple_n and_o lib._n cont_n precentorem_fw-la pag._n 372_o in_o the_o very_a sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o god_n sanctuary_n sure_o this_o be_v to_o grant_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n sit_v be_v the_o very_a temple_n and_o very_a sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o sadolet_n we_o deny_v not_o those_o to_o be_v church_n of_o christ_n which_o you_o govern_v in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o institution_n chap._n 2._o num_fw-la 11._o he_o say_v that_o among_o papist_n god_n covenant_n remain_v inviolable_a kill_v not_o yet_o kill_v and_o num_fw-la 12_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o there_o be_v church_n among_o they_o neither_o deny_v we_o but_o there_o remain_v church_n under_o he_o the_o pope_n he_o mean_v tyranny_n but_o which_o he_o have_v almost_o kill_v junius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 17._o write_v that_o the_o popish_a
that_o the_o church_n may_v for_o a_o time_n swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n even_o in_o some_o fundamental_a point_n and_o be_v notwithstanding_o safe_a and_o zanchius_n lib._n 1._o epist_n pag._n 221._o will_v not_o have_v we_o forsake_v any_o company_n on_o occasion_n of_o false_a opinion_n which_o swerve_v from_o the_o groundwork_n of_o faith_n d._n hall_n likewise_o in_o sva_fw-la roma_fw-la irreconc_fw-fr sect_n 1._o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v foster_v such_o error_n as_o by_o deduction_n and_o consequence_n destroy_v the_o foundation_n of_o belief_n d._n fulke_o in_o his_o serm_n upon_o the_o apocalips_n have_v make_v this_o objection_n to_o himself_o that_o see_v the_o church_n be_v the_o espouse_v of_o christ_n it_o can_v be_v that_o he_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v possess_v so_o many_o age_n with_o damnable_a error_n answer_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n what_o christ_n himself_o have_v say_v that_o the_o error_n of_o false_a prophet_n shall_v be_v exceed_o great_a in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o very_a elect_a if_o it_o may_v be_v shall_v be_v lead_v into_o error_n and_o lib._n the_o success_n eccles_n pag._n 122._o he_o say_v it_o seem_v not_o fit_v to_o take_v from_o the_o grecian_n the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n who_o notwithstanding_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v ensnare_v with_o grievous_a error_n now_o a_o grievous_a error_n according_a to_o d._n whitaker_n count_v 2._o quest_n 4_o cap._n 1._o dissolve_v the_o foundation_n and_o may_v therefore_o be_v term_v fundamental_a m._n perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n col_fw-fr 790_o when_o a_o error_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o foundation_n either_o direct_o or_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n if_o it_o proceed_v of_o weakness_n he_o in_o who_o it_o be_v aught_o to_o be_v repute_v a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o upon_o 1._o galat._n v._n 2_o if_o a_o church_n through_o frailty_n fall_v into_o error_n although_o it_o concern_v the_o foundation_n notwithstanding_o it_o remain_v yet_o a_o church_n as_o be_v certain_a by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o galathian_o and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n v._n 19_o the_o church_n of_o gaelatia_n through_o weakness_n remove_v itself_o unto_o another_o gospel_n and_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n yet_o paul_n write_v to_o it_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n d._n willet_n affirm_v the_o same_o in_o his_o synopsis_n cont_n 2._o q._n 3._o pag._n 104._o and_o melancthon_n tom_n 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 123._o touch_v the_o same_o string_n when_o he_o say_v the_o true_a church_n itself_o may_v have_v error_n which_o obscure_a and_o darken_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o tom_n 4._o in_o cap._n 9_o rom_n god_n gather_v always_o some_o company_n in_o which_o the_o foundation_n be_v keep_v sometime_o less_o pure_a sometime_o more_o d._n white_a in_o his_o way_n pag._n 111_o some_o article_n lie_v in_o the_o very_a foundation_n may_v be_v believe_v not_o so_o clear_o nay_o sometime_o they_o dare_v avouch_v that_o those_o very_a corinthian_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o those_o galatian_n also_o that_o change_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n into_o another_o gospel_n be_v of_o the_o church_n cit_fw-la luther_n in_o 1._o cap._n galat_n fol_z 215._o perkins_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la for_o thus_o the_o swisser_n confession_n c._n 17_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o manner_n of_o church_n those_o of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o galathian_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n which_o the_o apostle_n accuse_v of_o many_o and_o grievous_a crime_n and_o yet_o term_v they_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 27_o most_o grievous_a sin_n possess_v sometime_o whole_a church_n the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o galathian_o be_v not_o small_a offence_n the_o corinthian_n be_v less_o excusable_a than_o they_o howbeit_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o lord_n mercy_n sadeel_n in_o his_o answer_n add_v thes_n posnan_n cap._n 12._o pag._n 866_o the_o galathian_o and_o corinthian_n though_o corrupt_v with_o error_n and_o disagree_v each_o from_o other_o about_o the_o chief_a groundwork_n of_o belief_n and_o that_o not_o concern_v the_o manner_n but_o touch_v the_o matter_n itself_o retain_v notwithstanding_o the_o name_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o hence_o he_o gather_v that_o the_o debate_n and_o disagrement_n between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n do_v not_o let_v either_o of_o they_o from_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n 5._o the_o deed_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n yield_v we_o a_o second_o kind_n of_o proof_n for_o the_o electoral_a or_o mild_a lutheran_n in_o colloq_fw-la aldeburg_n scripto_fw-la 8._o call_v themselves_o fundamental_o lutheran_n profess_v that_o themselves_o differ_v fundamental_o fellow_n and_o companion_n of_o the_o same_o ministry_n fellow-cittizen_n and_o fellow-soldier_n of_o those_o of_o saxony_n or_o rigorous_a lutheran_n of_o who_o notwithstanding_o scripto_fw-la 6._o pag._n 111._o they_o give_v this_o censure_n they_o have_v show_v themselves_o to_o dissent_v from_o our_o church_n in_o the_o foundation_n again_o we_o will_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o they_o impugn_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o scripto_fw-la 4._o pag._n 4_o our_o opinion_n be_v that_o we_o disagree_v not_o about_o impertiment_n matter_n only_o or_o thing_n of_o no_o consequence_n but_o about_o the_o main_a and_o chief_a matter_n and_o scripto_fw-la 7_o this_o one_o thing_n they_o aim_v at_o and_o bend_v all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o undermine_v and_o overturn_v the_o groundwork_n of_o save_v doctrine_n and_o pag._n 374._o they_o complain_v that_o those_o of_o saxony_n do_v often_o cry_v out_o of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v worse_o than_o any_o idolater_n and_o the_o sacramentary_n in_o praefat._n apologet._n orthodoxi_fw-la consensus_fw-la write_v thus_o of_o the_o lutheran_n they_o have_v hitherto_o suffer_v among_o they_o such_o as_o call_v in_o question_n the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n of_o original_a sin_n of_o free_a will_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o law_n and_o use_n thereof_o of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n of_o his_o person_n of_o the_o election_n of_o god_n child_n and_o many_o other_o article_n of_o no_o small_a moment_n which_o thing_n they_o easy_o put_v up_o because_o all_o these_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n now_o that_o the_o sacramentary_n likewise_o acknowledge_v the_o lutheran_n for_o their_o brethren_n be_v apparent_a by_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o poland_n by_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o syntagme_n of_o confession_n lutheran_n sacramen●taries_n challenge_v lutheran_n by_o the_o conference_n of_o marspurg_n and_o montbelgard_n and_o other_o public_a writing_n and_o register_v act_n and_o yet_o they_o see_v and_o open_o exclaim_v against_o their_o error_n in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n of_o luther_n thus_o write_v zuinglius_fw-la tom_n 2._o resp_n ad_fw-la luther_n fol._n 401_o they_o and_o yet_o say_v they_o differ_v fundamental_o from_o they_o we_o judge_v thou_o a_o worse_a seductour_n impostor_n and_o denier_n of_o christ_n then_o be_v martion_n himself_o and_o fol._n 430._o luther_n as_o yet_o be_v entangle_v and_o stick_v fast_o in_o two_o error_n exceed_v grievous_a and_o in_o most_o foul_a ignorance_n of_o melancthon_n thus_o say_v caluin_n epist_n 183_o either_o he_o open_o impugn_v true_a doctrine_n in_o the_o chief_a head_n or_o else_o hide_v his_o meaning_n crafty_o or_o not_o very_o honest_o and_o epist_n 179._o he_o complain_v that_o melancthon_n endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v his_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n without_o which_o say_v he_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n free_a and_o undeserued_a mercy_n be_v utter_o lose_v the_o like_a he_o say_v epist_n 141._o sturmius_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr ratione_fw-la incundae_fw-la concordiae_fw-la say_v plain_o that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v pluck_v up_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o bullinger_n in_o fundamento_fw-la firmo_fw-la write_v that_o the_o very_a infidelity_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v by_o the_o lutheran_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n cureus_n in_o exegesi_n sacramentaria_fw-la pag._n 91_o surely_n the_o controvesy_n between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n be_v concern_v the_o foundation_n the_o sacramentary_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o conference_n at_o mulbrun_n say_v that_o the_o lutheran_n tear_v in_o preces_fw-la and_o adulterate_a the_o article_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o true_a humane_a nature_n etc._n etc._n which_o article_v say_v they_o no_o christian_a man_n can_v doubt_v but_o be_v the_o groundwork_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o foresay_a preface_n they_o be_v at_o variance_n not_o about_o the_o lord_n supper_n only_o but_o touch_v the_o person_n of_o ●hrist_n touch_v the_o union_n of_o his_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n touch_v the_o ubiquity_n of_o his_o body_n and_o corporal_a manducation_n thereof_o
man_n sonis_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la spondeum_fw-la c._n 10._o pag._n 365._o heretic_n be_v within_o the_o church_n lubbert_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 3_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o heretic_n be_v some_o as_o yet_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n some_o also_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_a junius_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 4_o heretic_n absolute_o be_v of_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o be_v such_o as_o overthrow_v fundamental_a article_n of_o religion_n ●●_o cap._n 3_o n._n ●●_o bullinger_n teach_v the_o same_o decad._n 2._o serm_n 8._o and_o it_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o as_o be_v before_o prove_v exclude_v none_o from_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n that_o deny_v only_o such_o article_n as_o be_v not_o fundamental_a howbeit_o some_o of_o they_o upon_o heretical_a privilege_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v will_v not_o have_v such_o call_v heretic_n ●5_n lib._n de_fw-fr carne_fw-la co●isti_fw-la cap._n ●5_n be_v indeed_o more_o ashamed_a of_o the_o name_n then_o of_o the_o thing_n itself_o zanchius_n likewise_o lib._n 1._o epist_n ad_fw-la dudit_fw-la pag._n 150._o say_v that_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a sect_n be_v within_o the_o church_n tilenus_n in_o syntag._n disput_fw-la 14_o heretic_n even_o those_o that_o subvert_v the_o foundation_n and_o schismatic_o in_o regard_n of_o outward_a communion_n be_v in_o the_o church_n till_o either_o of_o themselves_o they_o go_v to_o the_o enemy_n side_n or_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o the_o lawful_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o d._n feild_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap_n 14_o see_v god_n give_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o the_o dispensation_n of_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n only_o to_o his_o church_n if_o heretic_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v not_o then_o baptize_v and_o cap._n 7_o they_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a call_n and_o sanctify_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o divine_a truth_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n be_v of_o very_o diverse_a sort_n as_o heretic_n schismatik_n hypocrite_n and_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o whole_a save_a truth_n in_o unity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o a_o good_a and_o sanctify_a heart_n all_o these_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a call_n and_o sanctify_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o truth_n and_o consequent_o be_v all_o in_o some_o degree_n and_o sort_n of_o that_o society_n of_o man_n who_o god_n call_v out_o unto_o himself_o &_o separate_v from_o infidel_n which_o be_v right_o name_v the_o church_n d._n whitaker_n contr_n 4._o quest_n 5._o c._n 3._o pag_n 679_o all_o heretic_n be_v within_o the_o church_n hooker_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n pag._n 128_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v even_o heretic_n themselves_o to_o be_v though_o a_o maim_a part_n yet_o a_o part_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n again_o if_o a_o infidel_n shall_v pursue_v to_o death_n a_o heretic_n profess_v christianity_n only_o for_o christian_a procession_n sake_n can_v we_o deny_v unto_o he_o the_o honour_n of_o martyrdom_n by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o admit_v heretic_n not_o only_o into_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o into_o the_o invisible_a also_o or_o company_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o predestinate_a to_o salvation_n and_o d._n andrews_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n apology_n cap._n 5._o pag._n 121._o deny_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a and_o heretic_n be_v opposite_a wherefore_o unless_o he_o will_v debar_v and_o shut_v out_o some_o catholics_n from_o the_o church_n he_o must_v needs_o give_v admittance_n to_o heretic_n see_v by_o his_o own_o verdict_n they_o may_v be_v catholik_o d._n white_a in_o defence_n of_o his_o way_n cap._n 38._o pag._n 367_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n be_v hypocrite_n and_o unsound_a member_n that_o be_v not_o call_v effectual_o but_o disobey_v the_o truth_n whereof_o they_o make_v profession_n such_o be_v heretic_n schismatic_o etc._n etc._n touch_v their_o acceptation_n of_o schismatik_n beside_o what_o have_v be_v already_o allege_v d._n feild_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 13._o write_v thus_o schismatik_n they_o challenge_v schismatik_n the_o departure_n of_o schismatic_o be_v not_o such_o but_o that_o notwithstanding_o their_o schism_n they_o be_v and_o remain_v part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n junius_n in_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v lay_v claim_n to_o those_o schismatic_n who_o say_v he_o sever_v not_o themselves_o from_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o from_o a_o part_n thereof_o but_o d._n morto●_n in_o the_o 1._o part_n of_o his_o apology_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o say_v absolute_o without_o any_o acception_n or_o restraint_n at_o all_o schismatik_n be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 10._o pag._n 288_o variance_n say_v he_o and_o schism_n do_v not_o betoken_v the_o false_a church_n and_o d._n willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_n cont_n 2._o quest_n 3._o pag._n 104_o we_o say_v that_o schismatik_n though_o they_o hold_v some_o false_a point_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o if_o their_o error_n be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o if_o they_o retain_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n may_v make_v a_o particular_a church_n by_o themselves_o these_o be_v their_o acknowledgement_n touch_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n in_o general_n grecian_n they_o acknowledge_v the_o grecian_n let_v we_o now_o descend_v to_o particularity_n and_o see_v the_o courteous_a admission_n they_o give_v to_o some_o of_o they_o by_o name_n 8._o the_o grecian_n and_o other_o eastern_a schismatik_n yea_o heretic_n to_o for_o the_o most_o part_n find_v that_o favour_n at_o their_o hand_n as_o they_o vouchsafe_v to_o account_v they_o member_n of_o their_o church_n his_o majesty_n epist_n ad_fw-la card._n peron_n pa._n 13_o have_v thus_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n greece_n antioch_n egypt_n aethiopia_n muscovy_n and_o other_o more_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n d._n whi●e_v in_o defence_n of_o his_o way_n c._n 37._o pag._n 355_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o greece_n aethiope_n armenia_n and_o rome_n with_o the_o nation_n contain_v therein_o have_v in_o they_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n wherein_o man_n may_v be_v save_v d._n morton_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o protestant_n apology_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o sect_n 7._o say_v that_o the_o assyrian_a church_n keep_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o same_o especial_o of_o the_o grecian_n teach_v luther_n tom_n 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr captiu_fw-la babylon_n fol._n 65._o &_o in_o assert_v art_n 37._o fol._n 114._o innius_n cont_n 4_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 6._o sedeel_n respon_n ad_fw-la thes_n posnan_n cap._n 12._o d._n whitaker_n l●b_n 7._o cont_n duraeum_n sect_n 3._o bucanus_n loco_fw-la 41._o quest_n 5_o d._n feild_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 5._o &_o 28._o d._n fulke_o de_fw-fr success_n pag._n 120._o burhill_n pro_fw-la tortura_fw-la torti_n c._n 15._o and_o other_o 9_o and_o sometime_o they_o be_v not_o less_o freeharted_n towards_o western_a heretic_n melancthon_n in_o locis_fw-la à_fw-it maulio_fw-it editi●tit_fw-la de_fw-fr eccles_n pag._n 491._o write_v that_o two_o girl_n who_o be_v burn_v as_o he_o say_v for_o anabaptisme_n anabaptist_n they_o challenge_v the_o anabaptist_n hold_v the_o foundation_n of_o say_v and_o die_v in_o a_o good_a confession_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la tom_n 2._o lib._n the_o author_n sedit_fw-la fol._n 134._o &_o seq_fw-la exhort_v his_o fellower_n not_o to_o revolt_v from_o his_o doctrine_n for_o the_o debate_n and_o quarrel_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o anabaptist_n call_v both_o part_n most_o learned_a and_o son_n of_o the_o same_o father_n neither_o must_v thou_o say_v he_o give_v any_o man_n way_n to_o shake_v and_o weake●_n thy_o say_v although_o thou_o see_v that_o man_n of_o the_o great_a learning_n move_v dispute_n and_o fall_v by_o the_o care_n with_o much_o eagerness_n of_o contention_n touch_v external_a matter_n he_o mean_v baptism_n but_o let_v this_o be_v rather_o thy_o steadfast_a persuasion_n that_o by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o be_v all_o make_v son_n of_o the_o same_o father_n again_o neither_o be_o i_o wont_a to_o speak_v these_o thing_n for_o that_o i_o be_o so_o great_o move_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n and_o ibidem_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la fol._n 96._o he_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n which_o the_o church_n may_v omit_v or_o take_v quite_o away_o oecolampadius_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o epistle_n p._n 363._o say_v baptism_n be_v a_o external_a thing_n which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n may_v be_v dispense_v withal_o and_o musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la do_fw-mi de_fw-fr haeresi_fw-la pag._n 605._o reckon_v the_o anabaptist_n among_o those_o who_o
contrary_a opinion_n three_o we_o see_v how_o infamous_a a_o society_n protestancy_n be_v into_o which_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n likewise_o idolater_n infidel_n antichrist_n atheist_n be_v admit_v what_o sink_v ever_o do_v receive_v such_o filth_n sure_o such_o a_o rabble_n deserve_v better_o the_o name_n of_o hell_n then_o of_o the_o holy_a church_n four_o we_o see_v how_o monstruous_a a_o company_n it_o be_v which_o consist_v of_o so_o different_a and_o opposite_a member_n tym●past_n what_o they_o mean_v by_o a_o protestant_n in_o tym●past_n five_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o protestant_n mean_v when_o they_o say_v protestant_n have_v be_v always_o or_o before_o luther_n for_o they_o mean_v not_o that_o there_o have_v be_v always_o some_o who_o believe_v at_o least_o all_o their_o fundamental_a article_n but_o that_o there_o be_v always_o some_o who_o as_o they_o speak_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o error_n whether_o they_o be_v otherwise_o schismatik_n heretic_n infidel_n or_o atheist_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o man_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o have_v be_v always_o some_o rabble_n but_o none_o but_o a_o mad_a man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n &_o spouse_n of_o christ_n six_o we_o see_v how_o little_a protestant_n account_v of_o their_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n and_o believe_v nothing_o less_o than_o that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n or_o faith_n of_o christ_n for_o who_o doubt_v but_o schism_n heresy_n infidelity_n atheism_n be_v most_o pestilent_a plague_n and_o infernal_a darkness_n direct_o opposite_a to_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o form_n life_n &_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o can_v imagine_v note_n note_n that_o he_o can_v associate_v and_o unite_v together_o form_n so_o contrary_a as_o be_v light_a and_o darkness_n life_n and_o death_n truth_n and_o lie_n or_o that_o the_o society_n in_o darkness_n lie_v and_o death_n as_o be_v the_o society_n in_o schism_n heresy_n and_o infidelity_n can_v become_v one_o with_o the_o society_n in_o light_n life_n &_o truth_n as_o the_o church_n be_v if_o therefore_o serious_o they_o believe_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v never_o think_v that_o she_o can_v become_v one_o with_o the_o society_n in_o schism_n heresy_n and_o infidelity_n and_o this_o sometime_o protestant_n themselves_n perceive_v for_o brentius_n in_o appendice_fw-la recognit_fw-la thus_o speak_v to_o the_o sacramentary_n when_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o brethren_n of_o the_o lutheran_n who_o yet_o they_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n if_o they_o judge_v our_o opinion_n to_o be_v impious_a with_o what_o face_n do_v they_o desire_v to_o join_v themselves_o with_o that_o church_n which_o maintain_v impious_a doctrine_n and_o to_o be_v hold_v of_o she_o for_o brethren_n what_o fellowship_n say_v paul_n be_v there_o of_o justice_n with_o injustice_n or_o what_o communion_n of_o light_n with_o darkness_n or_o what_o agreement_n of_o christ_n with_o belial_n or_o what_o for_o the_o saythfull_a with_o the_o infidel_n wherefore_o if_o they_o desire_v this_o sincere_o and_o in_o earnest_n they_o manifest_o show_v that_o they_o make_v mockery_n of_o religion_n as_o if_o it_o skill_v not_o which_z one_o follow_v so_o he_o may_v pass_v his_o life_n peaceable_o and_o quiet_o in_o like_a manner_n those_o of_o wittenberg_n in_o their_o refutation_n of_o the_o orthodoxal_a consent_n pag._n 636._o say_v we_o can_v wonder_v enough_o that_o see_v they_o not_o only_o accuse_v the_o doctor_n of_o our_o church_n of_o horrible_a and_o damn_a heresy_n but_o also_o have_v long_o since_o condemn_v they_o to_o wit_n of_o arianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutichianisme_n marcionisme_n manicheisme_n and_o the_o monothelite_n heresy_n nevertheless_o they_o dare_v account_v we_o for_o brethren_n and_o desire_v our_o brotherhood_n who_o that_o be_v careful_a of_o piety_n and_o truth_n can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o these_o sectmaster_n do_v in_o earnest_n handle_v religion_n for_o if_o we_o be_v such_o as_o we_o be_v judge_v of_o they_o our_o friendship_n and_o fraternity_n be_v to_o be_v detest_v not_o desire_v thus_o speak_v the_o lutheran_n to_o the_o sacramentary_n which_o no_o whit_n less_o fall_v upon_o themselves_o because_o they_o also_o challenge_v the_o hussite_n and_o other_o old_a heretic_n who_o they_o can_v excuse_v from_o hold_v vile_a heresy_n final_o we_o see_v how_o uncertain_a protestant_n be_v in_o determ_v what_o a_o protestant_n be_v and_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o essence_n &_o make_v of_o a_o protestant_n &_o consequent_o how_o uncertain_a they_o must_v be_v who_o to_o hold_v for_o one_o of_o their_o household_n who_o for_o a_o stranger_n who_o for_o a_o brother_n who_o for_o a_o enemy_n which_o church_n or_o company_n they_o must_v embrace_v which_o they_o must_v fly_v which_o they_o must_v account_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n then_o the_o which_o uncertainty_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o miserable_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n wherefore_o since_o they_o be_v so_o uncertain_a in_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v therein_o settle_v some_o certainty_n and_o that_o according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o protestant_n to_o believe_v with_o only_a special_a faith_n that_o himself_o be_v justify_v chap._n vi_o 1._o above_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o a_o invisible_a or_o true_a protestant_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o they_o term_v he_o that_o with_o only_o special_a or_o peculiar_a faith_n he_o believe_v some_o thing_n belong_v to_o himself_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v justify_v in_o christ_n or_o as_o they_o use_v to_o speak_v that_o with_o faith_n he_o apprehend_v christ_n justice_n and_o apply_v it_o unto_o he_o elf_n in_o particular_a and_o to_o a_o visible_a protestant_n in_o sight_n of_o man_n it_o be_v in_o like_a sort_n necessary_a that_o he_o profess_v himself_o to_o believe_v with_o such_o a_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v justify_v in_o christ_n for_o example_n for_o luther_n to_o have_v be_v a_o true_a protestant_n before_o god_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o he_o have_v true_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o only_a the_o foresay_a special_a faith_n which_o he_o have_v of_o his_o own_o justice_n which_o faith_n they_o call_v special_a or_o particular_a because_o it_o be_v particular_a to_o luther_n no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v luther_n to_o be_v justify_v beside_o himself_o and_o for_o luther_n to_o have_v be_v a_o visible_a protestant_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n it_o be_v needful_a in_o like_a manner_n to_o have_v profess_v himself_o to_o have_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o only_a the_o say_a faith_n the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o caluin_n and_o of_o every_o protestant_n in_o particular_a that_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n it_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o a_o protestant_n that_o he_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o only_o special_a faith_n be_v manifest_a first_o because_o they_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o only_o special_a faith_n wherewith_o he_o believe_v something_o belong_v to_o himself_o alone_o not_o by_o a_o universal_a or_o catholic_a faith_n whereby_o he_o believe_v the_o mysterye_n of_o christian_a religion_n common_a to_o all_o and_o which_o every_o one_o must_v believe_v for_o this_o faith_n they_o call_v historical_a and_o say_v it_o may_v be_v in_o such_o as_o be_v not_o just_a yea_o in_o hypocrite_n and_o devil_n see_v therefore_o in_o their_o opinion_n no_o man_n be_v a_o true_a protestant_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o only_o he_o that_o be_v just_a nor_o any_o just_a but_o who_o have_v a_o special_a or_o peculiar_a faith_n wherewith_o he_o apprehend_v christ_n justice_n to_o himself_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n none_o can_v be_v a_o true_a protestant_n before_o god_n unless_o he_o have_v the_o foresay_a special_a faith_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o none_o can_v be_v a_o visible_a protestant_n before_o man_n unless_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v justification_n by_o only_a special_a faith_n because_o none_o can_v be_v account_v to_o be_v of_o any_o religion_n unless_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v those_o mean_n of_o obtain_v justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o that_o religion_n teach_v caluin_n 3_o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 16_o none_n be_v a_o true_a faithful_a man_n faith_n none_o faithful_a without_o special_a faith_n but_o he_o who_o with_o a_o solid_a persuasion_n that_o god_n love_v he_o assure_v himself_o of_o all_o thing_n from_o his_o goodness_n etc._n etc._n and_o §_o 39_o he_o say_v without_o this_o christianity_n stand_v not_o and_o in_o rom._n 1._o v._n 7_o hence_o we_o gather_v that_o none_o do_v right_o account_v themselves_o faithful_a unless_o
salvation_n whole_o overturn_v and_o lib._n the_o necess_n reform_v fol._n 47._o that_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o this_o doctrine_n no_o less_o than_o man_n life_n depend_v of_o his_o soul_n pareus_n in_o prooem_n lib._n de_fw-fr justificat_fw-la on_o this_o alone_a the_o hinge_n of_o our_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n do_v hang._n and_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n from_o popery_n and_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o say_v the_o only_a doctrine_n of_o obtain_v justice_n and_o salvation_n by_o only_a say_v and_o of_o lose_v they_o by_o incredulity_n be_v the_o sincere_a and_o proper_a gospel_n all_o other_o doctrine_n in_o the_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o law_n and_o those_o of_o geneva_n prefat_n syntag._n confess_v avouch_v that_o this_o article_n be_v the_o groundwork_n form_n and_o soul_n of_o christian_a religion_n soul_n the_o soul_n the_o sum_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n of_o which_o man_n be_v call_v faithful_a and_o true_a christian_n without_o which_o the_o knowledge_n of_o other_o article_n have_v no_o wholesome_a fruit_n for_o it_o be_v the_o substantial_a inward_a and_o formal_a cause_n of_o salvation_n of_o which_o all_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o god_n be_v and_o be_v pledge_n and_o seal_n unto_o which_o article_n all_o the_o other_o do_v tend_v as_o to_o their_o centre_n and_o in_o which_o man_n felicity_n consist_v 5._o neither_o do_v our_o english_a protestant_n make_v less_o account_n of_o this_o their_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n for_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 6._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 562._o say_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o and_o most_o fundamental_a puppe_n the_o prore_n &_o puppe_n as_o in_o which_o the_o prore_n and_o puppe_n of_o our_o salvation_n consist_v and_o who_o fain_o any_o other_o mean_n of_o justification_n do_v overthrow_v the_o foundation_n and_o most_o necessary_a head_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o be_v fall_v from_o salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la rat._n r._n camp_n he_o write_v thus_o of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n if_o james_n or_o a_o heavenly_a angel_n disallow_v it_o he_o be_v impure_a wicked_a and_o to_o be_v detest_v to_o hell_n d._n humphrey_n in_o his_o oration_n de_fw-fr vitando_fw-la ferman_n to_o call_v this_o article_n the_o chief_a point_n and_o hinge_n of_o faith_n d._n fulke_o de_fw-fr success_n pag._n 4._o the_o principal_a head_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n fox_n in_o his_o act_n pag._n 440_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christianity_n and_o pag._n 770_o foundation_n the_o foundation_n the_o only_a principal_a origin_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o final_o m._n powell_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap._n 5_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o say_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v merueil_v that_o protestant_n so_o high_o esteem_v this_o their_o article_n both_o because_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a bait_n wherewith_o they_o draw_v man_n unto_o they_o as_o also_o because_o as_o luther_n confess_v it_o be_v their_o chief_a defence_n without_o which_o they_o have_v long_o since_o perish_v and_o final_o because_o justification_n be_v one_o principal_a end_n of_o religion_n if_o special_a faith_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o justification_n undoubted_o it_o ought_v high_o to_o be_v esteem_v of_o that_o religion_n which_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o mean_n faith_n protestant_n esteem_v of_o only_a faith_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n to_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o only_a faith_n be_v the_o chief_a article_n the_o foundation_n the_o stay_n the_o head_n the_o fountain_n the_o sum_n the_o last_o end_n the_o prore_n and_o puppe_n the_o hinge_n the_o prop_n the_o castle_n the_o bulwarck_n the_o essential_a difference_n the_o definition_n the_o soul_n the_o form_n the_o formal_a cause_n the_o only_a rock_n the_o only_a safeguard_n of_o protestancy_n &_o the_o only_a way_n to_o heaven_n which_o fall_v the_o church_n yea_o god_n himself_o fall_v but_o none_o can_v be_v a_o protestant_n without_o the_o foundation_n head_n soul_n form_n sum_n definition_n etc._n etc._n of_o a_o protestant_n therefore_o none_o can_v he_o hold_v for_o a_o protestant_n unless_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o only_o special_a faith_n whomesoever_o therefore_o protestant_n can_v prove_v to_o have_v hold_v this_o article_n they_o can_v with_o any_o reason_n and_o colour_n challenge_v for_o protestant_n and_o because_o as_o it_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v they_o can_v prove_v that_o any_o one_o before_o luther_n hold_v this_o article_n nay_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o will_v prove_v that_o luther_n first_o devise_v it_o they_o can_v with_o any_o appearance_n of_o truth_n avouch_v that_o there_o be_v any_o protestant_n before_o he_o and_o in_o like_a sort_n who_o we_o can_v prove_v not_o to_o have_v believe_v this_o article_n we_o may_v evident_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v no_o protestant_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o protestant_n to_o believe_v all_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o protestancy_n chap._n vii_o ●_o beside_o the_o foresay_a article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n it_o be_v also_o necessary_a to_o the_o make_n of_o a_o protestant_n of_o a_o member_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n 2._o v●●●d_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 2._o that_o he_o believe_v at_o least_o all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o protestancy_n either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o so_o that_o he_o obstinate_o deny_v no_o one_o of_o they_o this_o be_v manifest_a first_o because_o as_o i_o show_v before_o cap._n 1_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n that_o all_o those_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n whosoever_o deny_v one_o fundamental_a article_n 3._o num._n 3._o again_o because_o themselves_o say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o fundamental_a article_n do_v insinuate_v that_o it_o sustain_v the_o church_n as_o the_o foundation_n sustain_v the_o house_n beside_o all_o protestant_n assign_v truth_n or_o purity_n in_o doctrine_n for_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o confession_n of_o ausparg_n cap._n 7._o the_o english_a confession_n cap._n 19_o the_o sui●zers_n cap._n de_fw-la eccles_n and_o other_o protestant_n common_o and_o their_o meaning_n be_v church_n truth_n essential_a to_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o essential_a mark_n whereupon_o d_o whitaker_n controver_n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 17._o pag._n 541._o say_v that_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a and_o the_o essential_a mark_n and_o at_o rat._n 3._o campiani_n that_o it_o be_v the_o substantial_a note_n his_o majesty_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cardinal_n peron_n that_o in_o be_v the_o substantial_a form_n of_o the_o church_n church_n caluin_n epist_n 190._o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o same_o say_v sadeel_n ad_fw-la sophism_n turriani_n loc_fw-la 1._o author_n de_fw-fr eccles_n in_o danaeo_n pag._n 1029._o vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n pag._n 145._o d._n willet_n count_v 2._o quest_n 3._o pag._n 102._o yea_o d._n morton_n part_n 1._o apos_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o affirm_v that_o protestant_n account_v the_o truth_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n the_o chief_a an_o almost_o only_o essential_a inseparable_a and_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o they_o put_v the_o truth_n of_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o their_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o essential_a part_n thereof_o as_o the_o french_a confession_n cap._n 27._o the_o magdeburgian_o cent._n 1._o lib._n 1._o cap._n 4_o col_fw-fr 140._o melancthon_n tom_n 1_o in_o cap._n 16._o matthae●_n d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 20._o pag._n 552._o sadeel_n ad_fw-la sophism_n surriani_n loc_fw-la 21._o and_o other_o common_o but_o this_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n if_o it_o must_v be_v in_o any_o article_n especial_o it_o must_v be_v in_o those_o which_o be_v fundamental_a as_o be_v manifest_a and_o the_o protestant_n do_v grant_v for_o thus_o write_v d._n morton_n part_n 1._o church_n purity_n in_o fundamental_a point_n essential_a to_o the_o church_n apol._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 38._o purity_n in_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v and_o make_v of_o the_o church_n and_o d._n feild_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 3_o purity_n from_o fundamental_a error_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o a_o church_n and_o the_o like_a have_v vorstius_n lib._n cit_fw-la pag._n 148._o nay_o the_o english_a confession_n art_n 19_o define_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a man_n in_o which_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n due_o minister_v according_a to_o christ_n
1._o cap._n 28._o doctrine_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v inspire_v from_o heaven_n and_o write_v by_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nay_o some_o lutheran_n as_o testify_v laskus_n epist_n ad_fw-la regem_fw-la poloniae_fw-la say_v that_o they_o will_v rather_o doubt_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n faith_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n then_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n and_o with_o the_o lutheran_n herein_o conspire_v the_o sacramentary_n for_o as_o bucer_n confess_v in_o the_o conference_n of_o ratisbon_n the_o protestant_n condemn_v all_o writing_n heaven_n inspire_a from_o heaven_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n and_o the_o apology_n thereof_o caluin_n admonit_a ult._n ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la pag._n 797._o say_v 154●_n surius_n anno_fw-la 154●_n touch_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n i_o answer_v thus_o that_o as_o it_o be_v publish_v at_o ratisbon_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o it_o contrary_a to_o our_o doctrine_n and_o epist_n 236._o say_v that_o be_v witting_o and_o willing_o subscribe_v to_o it_o beza_n epist_n 1._o write_v in_o this_o sort_n i_o define_v those_o to_o be_v our_o church_n which_o hold_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n the_o french_a confession_n etc._n etc._n and_o apol._n 1._o cont_n saintem_fw-la pag._n 297_o neither_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n such_o as_o any_o pious_a man_n may_v reject_v it_o zanchius_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la receive_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n as_o the_o square_a and_o rule_v of_o all_o doctrine_n and_o as_o vorstius_n write_v respon_n ad_fw-la epist_n parci_fw-la pag._n 91_o in_o the_o university_n of_o heddelberg_n they_o use_v to_o swear_v to_o no_o confession_n but_o to_o that_o of_o auspurg_n or_o as_o d._n whitaker_n affirm_v cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 505_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n be_v receive_v of_o all_o protestant_n unless_o perhaps_o it_o be_v in_o one_o word_n or_o two_o rather_o than_o in_o any_o opinion_n and_o in_o truth_n see_v all_o sacramentary_n profess_v to_o hold_v the_o lutheran_n who_o follow_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n for_o their_o brethren_n in_o christ_n and_o beside_o when_o we_o object_n unto_o they_o their_o dissension_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o appeal_v unto_o their_o harmony_n or_o syntagme_n of_o confession_n among_o which_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n be_v place_v as_o do_v those_o of_o geneva_n prefat_n syntagmatis_fw-la the_o swisser_n prefat_n suae_fw-la confess_v beza_n epist_n 1._o sadeel_n indice_fw-la repetit_fw-la turrian_n pag._n 808._o and_o respon_n ad_fw-la thesis_n posnan_n c._n 11._o vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n pag._n 168._o d._n feild_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 12._o &_o 42._o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 8._o pag._n 521._o d._n andrews_n respon_n ad_fw-la apol._n bellarm._n c._n 1._o d._n fulke_o de_fw-fr success_n pag._n 287._o &_o 304._o d._n white_a in_o his_o way_n to_o the_o church_n pag._n 138._o and_o other_o common_o when_o as_o i_o say_v the_o sacramentary_n do_v thus_o they_o must_v needs_o approve_v the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n at_o least_o in_o all_o the_o principal_a and_o fundamental_a point_n thereof_o for_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o hold_v they_o for_o brethren_n in_o christ_n who_o they_o see_v to_o dissent_v from_o they_o in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n nor_o say_v that_o those_o confession_n agree_v which_o be_v repugnant_a in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o belief_n article_n which_o the_o confess_v of_o ausp_n account_v fundamental_a article_n 2._o but_o this_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n so_o general_o receive_v and_o of_o so_o high_a account_n with_o protestant_n as_o we_o have_v rehearse_v have_v set_v down_o and_o declare_v which_o be_v the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o protestancy_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n thereof_o be_v set_v this_o title_n the_o principal_a article_n and_o after_o that_o many_o protestanticall_a opinion_n be_v rehearse_v thus_o it_o say_v of_o they_o cap._n 21._o doctrine_n the_o sum_n of_o protest_v doctrine_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o our_o church_n and_o afterwards_o name_v certain_a controversy_n of_o indulgence_n pilgrimage_n &_o the_o like_a it_o say_v of_o they_o these_o kind_n of_o matter_n we_o have_v let_v pass_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a in_o this_o cause_n may_v be_v easier_o know_v again_o point_n chief_a point_n those_o thing_n only_o be_v rehearse_v which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v tell_v and_o final_o we_o will_v present_v these_o article_n before_o write_v in_o which_o our_o confession_n may_v be_v extant_a necessary_a only_o necessary_a and_o the_o sum_n of_o their_o doctrine_n who_o teach_v we_o may_v be_v see_v and_o in_o another_o edition_n of_o this_o confession_n in_o melancthon_n tom_fw-mi 3._o thus_o be_v write_v in_o the_o end_n thereof_o we_o have_v comprise_v the_o sum_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n necessary_a to_o church_n necessary_a sum_z of_o doctrine_n necessary_a wherefore_o unless_o protestant_n will_v reject_v their_o first_o and_o most_o majestical_a confession_n of_o auspurg_n they_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o the_o article_n thereof_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o protestant_a doctrine_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v they_o only_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v tell_v and_o the_o sum_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n necessary_a to_o church_n but_o sure_o such_o be_v fundamental_a article_n 3._o neither_o do_v the_o say_a confession_n alone_o but_o also_o many_o other_o great_a protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o article_n of_o it_o to_o be_v fundamental_a for_o thus_o have_v the_o apology_n of_o that_o confession_n in_o melancthon_n tom_n 3._o fol._n 91_o church_n truth_n necessary_a to_o the_o church_n we_o have_v comprise_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n almost_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o melancthon_n himself_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o apology_n write_v that_o that_o confession_n be_v truth_n necessary_a to_o the_o church_n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o 3._o to_o i_o i_o gather_v together_o the_o head_n of_o confession_n comprise_v almost_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n the_o whole_a form_n of_o the_o confession_n be_v after_o send_v to_o luther_n who_o write_v back_o that_o he_o have_v read_v and_o allow_v this_o confession_n and_o tom_n 4._o respon_n ad_fw-la staphylum_fw-la pag._n 817._o say_v that_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n contain_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o doctrine_n and_o in_o prefat_n 2._o tom_n luther_n 11_o the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n which_o our_o church_n preach_v be_v public_o comprehend_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n doctrine_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o doctrine_n likewise_o the_o d._n of_o wittenberg_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o confession_n speak_v of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n say_v thus_o we_o command_v our_o preacher_n to_o write_v the_o sum_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o elector_n in_o colloq_fw-la aldeburg_n scrip_n 3._o pag._n 21._o say_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n reveal_v from_o heaven_n be_v dextrous_o plain_o and_o most_o sweet_o contain_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n and_o pag._n seq_n w●●●_n the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n we_o comprehend_v the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n kemnice_n praefat._n lib._n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la the_o sum_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n westphalus_n defence_n altera_fw-la cont_n laskum_n say_v it_o contain_v in_o brief_a the_o sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n james_n andrews_n lib._n cont_n hosium_n pag._n 22_o the_o sum_n of_o pious_a doctrine_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n final_o the_o lutheran_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n of_o newstad_n write_v in_o admonit_n de_fw-fr lib._n concord_n cap._n 4._o note_n pag._n 116_o do_v place_n in_o the_o role_n of_o heretic_n as_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o say_v and_o salvation_n all_o those_o who_o find_v any_o salt_n with_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n or_o dissent_v from_o it_o in_o any_o article_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o sacramentary_n themselves_o the_o palatin_n confession_n pag._n 198._o say_v thus_o that_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v present_v at_o auspurg_n and_o the_o apology_n annex_v thereto_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o prophet_n and_o the_o foresay_a creed_n as_o a_o certain_a little_a sum_n caluin_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la pag._n 142_o when_o at_o auspurg_n there_o be_v to_o be_v exhibit_v a_o form_n of_o confession_n melancthon_n the_o author_n thereof_o will_v not_o make_v any_o stay_n but_o only_o in_o that_o doctrine_n salvation_n doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o alone_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o
mass_n and_o book_n thus_o luther_n 2._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o protestant_n in_o sleidan_n lib._n 1._o fol._n 258_o the_o pope_n make_v law_n by_o which_o true_a knowledge_n be_v utter_o oppress_v melancthon_n tom_n 2._o lutheri_fw-la fol._n 192_o scholastical_a divinity_n be_v receive_v faith_n be_v destroy_v the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n be_v admit_v the_o magdeburgian_o praefat._v centur._n 5_o religion_n extreme_a abolition_n of_o religion_n there_o be_v a_o extreme_a abolition_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n under_o popery_n caluin_n praefat._n institut_fw-la in_o former_a age_n man_n have_v extinguish_v the_o light_n of_o god_n and_o 1._o institut_fw-la cap._n 11._o §_o 9_o many_o age_n since_o true_a religion_n be_v drown_v and_o overthrow_v 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 2_o bury_v the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n bury_v under_o popery_n that_o doctrine_n without_o which_o christianity_n can_v consist_v be_v all_o bury_v and_o shut_v out_o respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n pag._n 128._o he_o say_v that_o the_o necessity_n to_o leave_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v that_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a truth_n be_v extinct_a the_o word_n of_o god_n bury_v etc._n etc._n and_o p._n 130._o root_n chief_a point_n of_o doctrine_n overthrow_v from_o the_o root_n make_v this_o speech_n unto_o god_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o profane_a opinion_n which_o even_o by_o the_o ground_n overthrow_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o thou_o do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o word_n lib._n the_o necess_n refor_n pa._n 49_o when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v choke_v with_o these_o so_o many_o &_o so_o thick_a darkness_n luther_n step_v forth_o etc._n etc._n pag._n 62_o none_n pray_v to_o god_n with_o assure_a say_v that_o be_v in_o earnest_n neither_o can_v they_o for_o christ_n be_v bury_v in_o that_o manner_n as_o he_o be_v etc._n etc._n end_v word_n of_o god_n end_v respon_n ad_fw-la versipell_n pag._n 358_o they_o have_v extinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n in_o psycopan_n pag._n 388_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v end_v by_o perverse_a use_n and_o sloth_n now_o return_v to_o light_v in_o rom._n 11._o vers_fw-la 22_o the_o truth_n be_v take_v away_o out_o the_o light_n put_v out_o s._n deel_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la minist_n pag._n 552_o god_n suffer_v that_o light_n to_o be_v put_v out_o which_o shall_v perpetual_o have_v lighten_v we_o in_o govern_v our_o life_n banish_v pure_a worship_n banish_v crispin_n prae●at_a operum_fw-la occolampadij_fw-la both_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n and_o piety_n be_v take_v away_o they_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n all_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n celius_n secundus_fw-la cairo_n de_fw-la amplitudine_fw-la regni_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 1._o pag._n 33_o world_n true_a christ_n take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o by_o little_a and_o little_a true_a christ_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o antichrist_n put_v in_o his_o steed_n and_o hospin_n part_n 1._o histor_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 291._o write_v that_o after_o 800._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o light_n of_o the_o wholesome_a and_o true_a doctrine_n begin_v to_o be_v darken_v till_o it_o be_v utter_o put_v out_o out_o the_o light_n clean_o put_v out_o thus_o foreign_a protestant_n both_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n 3._o among_o english_a protestant_n thus_o write_v m._n bale_n cent._n 4._o c._n 6_o wholesome_a truth_n perish_v from_o the_o earth_n cent._n 1._o pag._n 69_o from_o this_o time_n anno_fw-la 607_o purity_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n vanish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n earth_n the_o truth_n perish_v from_o earth_n in_o his_o apology_n against_o priesthood_n and_o vow_n fol._n 3_o two_o thing_n have_v chief_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o utter_a decay_n and_o full_a destruction_n of_o christian_a religion_n etc._n etc._n church_n vanish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n m._n powell_n in_o ●tinerarium_fw-la cambr●ae_fw-la lib._n 2_o cap._n 7._o say_v that_o about_o the_o year_n 1189_o there_o be_v the_o chief_a reign_n of_o darkness_n in_o so_o much_o that_o not_o only_o preach_v of_o the_o true_a word_n but_o also_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v banish_v and_o scarce_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n remain_v religion_n utter_a decay_n &_o full_a destruction_n of_o religion_n m._n fox_n in_o the_o protestation_n before_o his_o act_n affirm_v that_o about_o the_o year_n 1215._o and_o 1080_o christian_n say_v be_v extinguish_v and_o pag._n 840._o that_o christian_a religion_n be_v whole_o change_v into_o idolatry_n d._n fulke_o ad_fw-la cavillat_n s●apletoni_n remain_v scarce_o name_n of_o christianity_n remain_v scarce_o can_v he_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o banish_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o europe_n and_o final_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n part_n 5._o cap._n 13._o divis_fw-la 1._o say_v that_o papist_n have_v break_v in_o piece_n all_o the_o pipe_n and_o conduit_n have_v stop_v up_o all_o the_o spring_n and_o choke_v the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n and_o by_o damn_v up_o all_o the_o fountain_n of_o god_n word_n have_v bring_v the_o people_n into_o a_o pitiful_a thirst_n item_n find_v not_o a_o sparck_n of_o divine_a light_n find_v with_o great_a distress_n go_v they_o scatter_v about_o seek_v some_o sparck_n of_o heavenly_a light_n to_o refresh_v their_o conscience_n withal_o but_o that_o light_n be_v already_o thorough_o quench_v out_o so_o that_o they_o can_v find_v none_o this_o be_v a_o rusull_n state_n this_o be_v a_o lamentable_a form_n of_o god_n church_n it_o be_v a_o misery_n to_o live_v therein_o without_o the_o gospel_n out_o protestant_n light_v thorough_o quench_v out_o without_o light_n without_o all_o comfort_n thus_o write_v these_o learned_a protestant_n both_o english_a and_o stranger_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o doctrine_n their_o faith_n their_o religion_n and_o gospel_n before_o luther_n arise_v which_o do_v so_o plain_o testify_v the_o substantial_a destruction_n thereof_o as_o i_o may_v well_o use_v s._n augustin_n word_n in_o the_o like_a occasion_n if_o i_o shall_v speak_v thus_o they_o will_v resist_v and_o cry_v 9_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la pec_fw-la mer._n c._n 9_o that_o i_o speak_v not_o true_o think_v not_o true_o for_o in_o these_o word_n if_o they_o be_v speak_v by_o other_o they_o will_v imagine_v no_o other_o meaning_n then_o that_o which_o in_o the_o foresay_a protestant_n they_o will_v not_o understand_v 4._o perish_a protestant_n confess_v their_o lundam_fw-la art_n perish_a neither_o write_v they_o otherwise_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o principal_a and_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n for_o thus_o the_o confession_n of_o anspurg_n cap._n 20_o when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v principal_a in_o the_o church_n lay_v so_o long_o unknown_a unknown_a sole_a faith_n unknown_a as_o all_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o most_o profound_a silence_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o faith_n that_o in_o sermon_n only_o the_o justice_n of_o work_n be_v speak_v of_o in_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o tit_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la pag._n 25_o overwhelm_v horrible_o overwhelm_v in_o time_n past_o certain_a absurd_a opinion_n horrible_o overwhelm_v this_o doctrine_n in_o which_o the_o unlearned_a feign_v that_o man_n do_v satisfy_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v great_a silence_n how_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n and_o pag._n 27_o the_o be_v no_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o pag._n 19_o in_o time_n pass_v there_o be_v great_a silence_n in_o church_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o say_v and_o praefat._n apol._n confess_v august_n in_o melancthon_n tom_n 3._o fol._n 27_o all_o church_n monastery_n school_n brief_o all_o book_n of_o late_a divine_n unknown_a no_o man_n teach_v &c_n &c_n all_o prot._n comfort_n unknown_a be_v before_o mute_a of_o the_o justice_n of_o faith_n no_o man_n teach_v sin_n to_o be_v forgive_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n sacrament_n be_v impious_o profane_v after_o that_o opinion_n that_o they_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n wrought_v be_v receive_v and_o this_o opinion_n do_v whole_o oppress_v the_o doctrine_n of_o say_v praefat._v conf._n saxoniae_n all_o this_o comfort_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o every_o one_o how_o a_o man_n convert_v to_o god_n be_v justify_v be_v unknown_a the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o city_n in_o sleidan_n lib._n 21._o fol._n 240_o the_o contention_n be_v about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o say_v and_o of_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o christian_a life_n and_o of_o pure_a religion_n extinct_a utter_o extinct_a and_o it_o can_v say_v they_o be_v deny_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v utter_o extinct_a and_o
he_o add_v in_o our_o time_n god_n raise_v apostle_n or_o at_o least_o evangelist_n for_o there_o be_v need_n of_o such_o to_o reduce_v the_o church_n from_o the_o revolt_n of_o antichrist_n the_o french_a confession_n art_n 31_o in_o our_o day_n the_o state_n of_o the_o curch_n be_v interrupt_v interrupt_v state_n of_o the_o church_n interrupt_v god_n raise_v up_o some_o extraordinary_o which_o may_v restore_v the_o decay_a ruin_n of_o the_o church_n or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o french_a copy_n in_o our_o day_n when_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v interrupt_v god_n raise_v up_o some_o after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o the_o church_n a_o new_a new_a church_n to_o be_v set_v up_o a_o new_a which_o be_v in_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n but_o sure_o that_o church_n which_o be_v in_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n &_o so_o as_o it_o need_v to_o be_v set_v up_o a_o new_a be_v substantial_o fall_v danaeus_n in_o lib._n augustini_fw-la de_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la cap._n 95._o about_o the_o year_n after_o christ_n passion_n 574_o this_o slaughter_n plague_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n begin_v church_n slaughter_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o afterward_o utter_o destroy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n destroy_v kingdom_n of_o christ_n utter_o destroy_v and_o lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 8_o the_o church_n be_v in_o banishment_n 350._o year_n aretius_n in_o locis_fw-la part_n 3._o fol._n 25._o have_v say_v that_o luther_n be_v immediate_o send_v of_o god_n add_v god_n then_o use_v immediate_a vocation_n when_o there_o be_v no_o church_n found_v or_o have_v be_v found_v be_v so_o degenerate_v thereof_o no_o church_n or_o only_a shadow_n thereof_o that_o the_o only_a shadow_n of_o she_o remain_v chassan_n in_o locis_fw-la lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n pag._n 151_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v break_v of_o sadcel_n lib._n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la oftentym_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v corrupt_v decay_a overthrow_v and_o her_o foundation_n shake_v and_o overturn_v and_o p._n 555_o that_o to_o restore_v she_o we_o must_v do_v as_o man_n use_v to_o do_v in_o renew_v that_o building_n which_o be_v quite_o fall_v and_o in_o refutat_fw-la thes_n posnan_n cap._n 8_o when_o popish_a error_n have_v possess_v almost_o the_o whole_a world_n nor_o there_o appear_v open_o true_a fruit_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o nor_o true_a leaf_n we_o say_v the_o church_n be_v in_o one_o or_o two_o two_o the_o church_n be_v in_o one_o or_o two_o boysseul_n in_o confurat_n spondae●_n pag._n 742_o it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o church_n be_v corrupt_v all_o adulteress_n all_o idolatress_n soninus_n in_o methodo_fw-la theol._n pag._n 212_o about_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a the_o church_n degenerate_v more_o and_o more_o until_o at_o last_o it_o lose_v all_o purity_n and_o plain_o fall_v to_o dotage_n yea_o to_o madness_n and_o in_o the_o west_n end_v in_o popery_n and_o in_o the_o east_n in_o mahometisme_n d._n whitaker_n controver_n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 512_o as_o man_n do_v in_o a_o building_n fall_v that_o who_o will_v renew_v it_o build_v not_o in_o the_o old_a foundation_n because_o it_o be_v loose_v and_o not_o sound_a but_o lay_v some_o new_a foundation_n so_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o church_n by_o luther_n behold_v the_o old_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n put_v away_o and_o a_o new_a lay_v lay_v a_o new_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n lay_v and_o pag._n 510._o he_o say_v that_o before_o luther_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v and_o quite_o overthrow_v and_o the_o church_n decay_v &_o overturn_v and_o quaest_n 5._o cit_fw-la pag._n 528_o luther_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o restore_v religion_n corrupt_v and_o controver_n 4._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 12._o pag_n 683_o so_o at_o last_o the_o curch_n be_v oppress_v &_o extinguish_v d._n fulke_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o false_a catholic_a pag._n 35._o the_o true_a church_n sail_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n d._n morton_n apol._n part_n 1._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o protestant_n minister_n be_v raise_v to_o set_v up_o again_o the_o church_n be_v pitiful_o fall_v ruin_n nothing_o in_o the_o church_n but_o pitiful_a ruin_n the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n part_n 4._o cap._n 9_o divis_fw-la 3_o for_o these_o man_n new_a after_o they_o have_v leave_v nothing_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o have_v any_o likeness_n of_o his_o church_n yet_o will_v etc._n etc._n ibidem_fw-la cap._n 14._o divis_fw-la 1._o &_o 2_o long_n ago_o have_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v to_o have_v the_o whole_a church_n depend_v upon_o himself_o alone_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o it_o be_v clea●●_n fall_v down_o long_o ago_o and_o part_n 6._o cap._n 17._o divis_fw-la 1._o &_o 2._o when_o we_o likewise_o see_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v quite_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o these_o man_n ground_n the_o only_a name_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n root_v out_o from_o the_o ground_n and_o that_o nothing_o remain_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n but_o pitiful_a spoil_n and_o decay_n we_o reckon_v it_o etc._n etc._n m._n fox_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la the_o church_n be_v degenerate_v from_o the_o apostolic_a institution_n above_o all_o measure_n reserve_v only_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n but_o far_o from_o the_o truth_n thereof_o in_o very_a deed_n do_v fall_v into_o all_o kind_n of_o extreme_a tyranny_n etc._n etc._n and_o m._n cartwright_n in_o d._n whitgifts_n defence_n pag._n 217_o when_o antichrist_n have_v root_v out_o the_o church_n even_o from_o the_o ground_n last_o orhinus_n one_o of_o the_o four_o false_a apostle_n of_o england_n have_v these_o word_n consider_v how_o christ_n by_o his_o wisdom_n power_n overthrow_v coccius_n to_o 1._o pag._n 983._o quite_o overthrow_v goodness_n have_v sound_v build_v settle_a his_o church_n with_o his_o blood_n wash_v it_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n enrich_v it_o and_o at_o last_o see_v it_o quite_o overthrow_v i_o can_v not_o but_o marvel_n 8._o to_o these_o their_o plain_a confession_n of_o the_o entire_a destruction_n of_o their_o church_n we_o may_v add_v that_o common_o they_o say_v perish_v protestant_n say_v that_o elias_n think_v the_o church_n be_v perish_v that_o elias_n the_o prophet_n do_v think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v fail_v in_o his_o time_n and_o that_o beside_o himself_o there_o be_v no_o faithful_a man_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n luther_n lib._n de_fw-la missa_fw-la tom_fw-mi 7._o fol._n 237_o elias_n think_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n to_o have_v be_v extinct_a that_o himself_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o the_o only_a christian_a beurlin_n in_o refurat_n soti_fw-la cap_n 53_o elias_n complain_v before_o god_n that_o beside_o himself_o there_o be_v never_o a_o godly_a man_n remain_v lobechius_n disput_fw-la theol._n 10_o elias_n think_v the_o church_n have_v holy_a perish_v zuinglius_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n cap._n de_fw-fr euchar_n elias_n think_v that_o he_o be_v alone_o peter_n martyr_n in_o rom._n 11_o elias_n think_v that_o piety_n be_v perish_v and_o that_o all_o saint_n be_v cut_v of_o in_o israel_n caluin_n in_o antid_v art_n 18._o paris_n elias_n think_v himself_o alone_o to_o remain_v of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o rom._n cap._n 11._o v._n 2_o he_o think_v that_o in_o his_o nation_n religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n have_v perish_v he_o condemn_v the_o whole_a nation_n beside_o himself_o of_o impiety_n he_o imagine_v that_o he_o have_v be_v leave_v alone_o keckerman_n lib._n 3._o system_fw-la theol._n pag._n 389_o elias_n believe_v that_o he_o alone_o remain_v of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n who_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n lubbert_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o elias_n think_v that_o beside_o himself_o there_o remain_v none_o who_o be_v true_o turn_v to_o god_n rivet_v in_o epitome_n controver_n tract_n 1._o sect_n 37_o elias_n think_v that_o he_o have_v remain_v alone_o vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n pag._n 134_o elias_n think_v that_o of_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n he_o alone_o remain_v boysseul_n in_o confutat_fw-la spondaei_n pag._n 247_o elias_n think_v that_o he_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n nay_o polanus_fw-la part_n 3._o thes_n de_fw-fr eccles_n say_v plain_o in_o his_o own_o person_n that_o the_o church_n fail_v in_o elias_n his_o tyme._n the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n part_n 4._o cap._n 12._o divis_fw-la 1._o &_o 2._o say_v where_o be_v that_o church_n then_o when_o ely_n the_o prophet_n so_o lamentable_o and_o bitter_o make_v his_o moan_n that_o only_o himself_o be_v leave_v of_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o do_v due_o and_o true_o
12._o what_o as_o tertullian_n say_v mean_v they_o otherwise_o then_o they_o write_v master_n of_o deceit_n not_o of_o truth_n 10._o if_o any_o demand_n how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o protestant_n shall_v so_o often_o and_o so_o plain_o say_v that_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v perish_v before_o luther_n appear_v perish_v wherefore_o protestant_n say_v their_o church_n be_v perish_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v many_o cause_n thereof_o first_o because_o it_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o at_o all_o when_o luther_n begin_v that_o as_o themselves_o have_v confess_v they_o can_v deny_v it_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v if_o any_o deny_v it_o he_o may_v be_v convince_v all_o man_n must_v confess_v it_o the_o matter_n itself_o proclaim_v and_o prove_v it_o 1.4.5.7_o num._n 1.4.5.7_o and_o final_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a both_o to_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a second_o they_o say_v so_o for_o to_o move_v man_n to_o hate_v the_o pope_n and_o papist_n who_o they_o affirm_v to_o have_v destroy_v the_o faith_n and_o church_n three_o for_o to_o purchase_v the_o love_n of_o the_o people_n as_o who_o have_v restore_v to_o they_o again_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n four_o they_o say_v so_o for_o to_o excuse_v their_o preach_n and_o play_v the_o pastor_n without_o ordinary_a call_n as_o if_o forsooth_o when_o they_o begin_v there_o have_v be_v no_o church_n which_o can_v give_v they_o commission_n final_o as_o phrantike_a man_n so_o protestant_n sometime_o be_v in_o good_a fit_n in_o which_o they_o see_v and_o confess_v the_o truth_n but_o at_o other_o time_n when_o catholik_o out_o of_o this_o perish_a and_o destruction_n of_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n do_v infer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n or_o religion_n of_o christ_n 16._o matth._n 16._o against_o which_o as_o he_o have_v promise_v the_o gat_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v but_o some_o other_o church_n &_o religion_n either_o first_o begin_v by_o luther_n or_o else_o restore_v and_o renown_a by_o he_o after_o that_o it_o be_v substantial_o perish_v and_o destroy_v then_o they_o mollify_v and_o gloze_v their_o former_a say_n devise_v strange_a &_o violent_a sense_n of_o their_o word_n and_o every_o way_n seek_v out_o shift_n and_o sleight_n whereby_o they_o may_v avoid_v the_o force_n of_o their_o own_o testimony_n which_o we_o shall_v rehearse_v and_o refute_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n the_o protestant_n shift_n for_o to_o delude_v their_o foresay_a confession_n touch_v the_o substantial_a decay_n of_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n refute_v chap._n ii_o 1._o albeit_o the_o foresay_a confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n touch_v the_o substantial_a decay_n of_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n before_o luther_n arise_v be_v so_o plain_a and_o evident_a as_o we_o may_v well_o say_v with_o tertullian_n who_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v these_o rather_o than_o expound_v they_o 21._o de_fw-fr resur_n c._n 21._o yet_o because_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o heretic_n be_v so_o great_a as_o it_o may_v be_v soon_o overcome_v then_o persuade_v &_o be_v wont_a to_o seek_v out_o all_o shift_n to_o avoid_v the_o force_n even_o of_o their_o own_o word_n i_o will_v hear_v set_v down_o their_o shift_n and_o confute_v they_o 2._o their_o first_o shift_n be_v shift_n their_o first_o shift_n that_o the_o forename_a protestant_n by_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n religion_n and_o the_o like_a when_o they_o say_v that_o they_o perish_v do_v not_o mean_v the_o inward_a faith_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o if_o no_o man_n in_o his_o heart_n have_v hold_v the_o protestant_a faith_n or_o religion_n but_o only_o the_o outward_a profession_n thereof_o and_o so_o mean_v only_o that_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o protestancy_n be_v perish_v or_o that_o none_o profess_v it_o i_o grant_v indeed_o that_o sometime_o they_o speak_v of_o outward_a profession_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o come_v all_o to_o one_o purpose_n perish_v that_o they_o say_v inward_a faith_n perish_v because_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n can_v no_o more_o perish_v in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o faith_n itself_o as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o speak_v not_o also_o of_o the_o inward_a faith_n or_o of_o faith_n itself_o be_v most_o false_a first_o because_o they_o say_v so_o without_o all_o proof_n neither_o can_v they_o prove_v it_o otherwise_o then_o because_o perhaps_o the_o same_o protestant_n have_v other_o where_o say_v the_o contrary_a which_o kind_n of_o proof_n we_o hereafter_o show_v to_o be_v nothing_o worth_a ul_a lib._n 2._o c._n ul_a again_o it_o be_v credible_a unless_o one_o will_v believe_v what_o he_o listen_v that_o by_o so_o many_o word_n of_o light_n clarity_n religion_n worship_n of_o god_n truth_n of_o god_n 3._o ca._n 1._o n._n 2._o 3._o say_v true_a knowledge_n knowledge_n of_o faith_n christian_n faith_n knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o have_v use_v and_o we_o repeat_v they_o mean_v not_o faith_n itself_o but_o only_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o faith_n beside_o they_o say_v plain_o that_o none_o believe_v to_o be_v justify_v without_o work_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o say_v be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n 6_o cap._n 1._o nu_fw-la 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o 6_o that_o wholesome_a truth_n perish_v from_o earth_n and_o that_o it_o be_v take_v from_o man_n that_o christ_n be_v bury_v and_o take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n that_o all_o protestant_n consolation_n be_v unknown_a that_o without_o luther_n one_o jot_n have_v not_o be_v know_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n the_o knowledge_n of_o say_v fail_v and_o last_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o understand_v but_o utter_o unknown_a which_o word_n be_v manifest_o speak_v &_o mean_v of_o true_a or_o inward_a faith_n i_o add_v also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o civil_a law_n approve_v by_o luther_n and_o protestant_n haeret_fw-la luther_n de_fw-fr abrog_n mis_fw-fr &_o epist_n ad_fw-la amsd._n schusselb_n tom_fw-mi 4._o catal_a haeret_fw-la that_o who_o can_v speak_v clear_o and_o yet_o speak_v obscure_o shall_v have_v his_o word_n expound_v against_o he_o see_v therefore_o protestant_n can_v have_v speak_v far_o more_o clear_o if_o they_o have_v mean_v only_o that_o outward_a profession_n of_o faith_n have_v perish_v we_o may_v lawful_o expound_v their_o word_n against_o themselves_o 3._o to_o this_o shift_n be_v another_o like_a wherewith_o they_o say_v that_o the_o foresay_a testimony_n of_o protestant_n touch_v the_o destruction_n or_o decay_n of_o their_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o their_o invisible_a church_n shift_n the_o second_o shift_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o company_n of_o only_a true_a faithful_a and_o predestinate_a man_n but_o of_o the_o decay_n of_o their_o visible_a church_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o company_n of_o all_o those_o that_o profess_v true_a doctrine_n and_o be_v the_o church_n not_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o only_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o sometime_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n notwithstanding_o as_o before_o i_o say_v it_o come_v all_o to_o one_o purpose_n because_o as_o shall_v be_v prove_v hereafter_o there_o can_v be_v no_o invisible_a church_n without_o a_o visible_a nor_o a_o company_n of_o faithful_a and_o predestinate_a man_n but_o they_o must_v profess_v their_o faith_n perish_v the_o protestant_n say_v the_o true_a church_n have_v perish_v but_o most_o false_a it_o be_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o also_o of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v invisible_a to_o any_o but_o to_o god_n alone_o for_o first_o as_o before_o i_o argue_v this_o can_v be_v prove_v otherwise_o then_o that_o perhaps_o the_o same_o man_n have_v at_o other_o time_n say_v the_o contrary_a which_o will_v prove_v that_o they_o like_v liar_n have_v contradict_v themselves_o not_o that_o they_o have_v not_o say_v this_o which_o they_o have_v as_o clear_o say_v as_o ever_o they_o say_v any_o thing_n else_o beside_o in_o say_v according_a to_o their_o meaning_n that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o perish_v or_o can_v perish_v they_o do_v not_o indeed_o contradict_v themselves_o when_o they_o say_v that_o it_o have_v or_o can_v perish_v for_o when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v perish_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o church_n spread_v throughout_o the_o world_n ●_o cap._n 1._o n._n ●_o for_o as_o we_o see_v they_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n may_v consist_v or_o be_v reduce_v to_o one_o or_o two_o and_o that_o elias_n think_v there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n but_o himself_o whereupon_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3._o pag._n
catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n final_o this_o shall_v yet_o more_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v where_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n 5._o their_o four_o shift_n be_v perish_v that_o they_o mean_v of_o a_o substantial_a perish_v that_o by_o the_o word_n destruction_n decay_v fail_a overthrow_v and_o such_o other_o they_o mean_v not_o a_o substantial_a perish_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o church_n but_o only_o a_o accidental_a corruption_n of_o become_v worse_o but_o this_o shift_n also_o be_v soon_o refute_v first_o because_o luther_n say_v of_o his_o faith_n doctrine_n or_o gospel_n that_o it_o die_v be_v neglect_v overwhelm_v extinct_a blot_v out_o take_v away_o overthrow_v lose_v ●●_o cap._n 2._o n._n ●●_o abolish_v forget_v and_o root_v out_o and_o that_o he_o may_v put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o by_o these_o word_n he_o mean_v a_o true_a and_o substantial_a destruction_n or_o perish_v he_o add_v unto_o they_o most_o significant_a adverbe_n say_v that_o it_o be_v true_o overwhelm_v whole_o extinct_a utter_o extinct_a ib._n ib._n extinct_a from_o the_o bottom_n plain_o extinct_a plain_o take_v away_o simple_o take_v away_o quite_o take_v away_o utter_o bury_v utter_o lose_v whole_o abolish_v and_o blot_v out_o and_o most_o plain_o root_v out_o and_o lest_o any_o one_o may_v also_o cavil_v that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o a_o true_a and_o substantial_a destruction_n he_o say_v further_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v obscure_v nay_o extinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v darken_a nay_o whole_o overwhelm_v christ_n gospel_n they_o have_v not_o only_o obscure_v but_o absolute_o take_v away_o the_o gospel_n 4._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la peccat_fw-la mer._n c._n 4._o sure_o as_o s._n augustin_n say_v such_o kind_n of_o word_n needs_o no_o expositor_n but_o only_o a_o reader_n in_o like_a sort_n other_o protestant_n say_v of_o their_o faith_n or_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v banish_v cast_v out_o extinct_a end_v choke_v bury_v obscure_v till_o it_o be_v utter_o extinguish_v 2.3_o num._n 2.3_o that_o it_o perish_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o vanish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n they_o add_v also_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o overturn_v utter_o extinct_a quite_o change_v into_o idolatry_n overturn_v from_o the_o root_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o utter_a abolition_n a_o extreme_a sall_n away_o and_o full_a destruction_n of_o it_o so_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o little_a spark_n can_v be_v sound_a but_o it_o be_v quite_o extinct_a &_o scarce_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n be_v leave_v 6._o beside_o of_o their_o principal_a and_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n they_o say_v 6._o c._n 1._o n._n 4._o 5._o 6._o that_o lie_v long_o unknown_a that_o there_o be_v profound_a silence_n of_o it_o that_o no_o man_n teach_v it_o that_o it_o be_v neglect_v lose_v blot_v out_o extinct_a and_o horrible_o oppress_v that_o it_o be_v corrupt_v nay_o extinct_a and_o abolish_v that_o no_o man_n believe_v it_o that_o it_o be_v utter_o extinct_a plain_o lose_v quite_o lose_v whole_o suppress_v whole_o oppress_v whole_o trample_v whole_o dash_v out_o utter_o blot_v out_o quite_o extinct_a quite_o take_v away_o quite_o neglect_v and_o blot_v out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n and_o not_o only_o obscure_v but_o quite_o extinguish_v but_o if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v so_o extinct_a as_o no_o man_n believe_v it_o and_o blot_v out_o of_o man_n memory_n sure_o not_o only_a the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o also_o their_o faith_n itself_o be_v utter_o perish_v and_o consequent_o also_o their_o church_n whereof_o this_o article_n be_v the_o life_n soul_n sum_n definition_n and_o all_o 7._o num._n 7._o 7._o of_o the_o church_n also_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v banish_v fail_v be_v oppress_v extinct_a overturn_v fall_v whole_o fall_v that_o it_o fall_v to_o antichrist_n that_o the_o old_a foundation_n thereof_o be_v remove_v and_o a_o new_a lay_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n perish_v that_o there_o be_v a_o slaughter_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v throw_v down_o &_o raze_v to_o the_o ground_n that_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nought_o but_o pitiful_a ruin_n that_o the_o church_n be_v from_o the_o foundation_n root_v out_o and_o overthrow_v by_o the_o ground_n and_o that_o where_o it_o once_o be_v there_o remain_v only_o the_o name_n the_o substance_n be_v quite_o lose_v sure_o either_o by_o these_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v signify_v a_o substantial_a destruction_n or_o that_o can_v be_v plain_o signify_v by_o any_o manner_n of_o word_n beside_o the_o form_n of_o speech_n do_v more_o clear_o signify_v a_o substantial_a destruction_n they_o those_o which_o protestant_n condemn_v in_o some_o heretic_n for_o caluin_n lib._n cont_n seruetum_fw-la pag._n 657._o condemn_v seruet_fw-la for_o say_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o long_a banishment_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o she_o have_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o as_o we_o see_v danaeus_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v banish_v powell_n that_o all_o true_a religion_n be_v banish_v d._n fulke_o that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v drive_v out_o an●_n crispin_n that_o all_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v drive_v out_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 471._o and_o otherwhere_o condemn_v the_o donatist_n and_n other_o heretic_n for_o say_v that_o the_o church_n perish_v and_o yet_o bale_n say_v that_o wholesome_a truth_n perish_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o lobechius_n under_o elias_n his_o name_n that_o the_o church_n quite_o perish_v moreover_o they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o one_o or_o two_o which_o be_v indeed_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v substantial_o perish_v 8._o num._n 8._o for_o the_o church_n be_v define_v to_o be_v a_o company_n or_o multitude_n in_o the_o english_a confession_n article_n 19_o one_o that_o the_o church_n can_v consist_v of_o one_o in_o the_o french_a art_n 27._o in_o the_o suitzer_n art_n 17._o and_o in_o the_o flemish_a art_n 27._o but_o one_o or_o two_o be_v not_o a_o company_n whereupon_o danaeus_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 16._o say_v it_o be_v write_v of_o vlpia●_o the_o lawyer_n in_o the_o civil_a law_n that_o at_o least_o three_o person_n be_v require_v to_o make_v a_o college_n and_o if_o to_o a_o college_n much_o more_o to_o the_o church_n and_o lubbert_n lib._n 2._o replicat_fw-la cap._n 3._o say_v plain_o that_o one_o man_n make_v not_o a_o church_n and_o polanus_fw-la in_o syntag._n lib._n 7._o cap._n 1_o one_o man_n though_o never_o so_o holy_a can_v be_v a_o church_n beurlin_n also_o in_o refut_n soti_n neither_o do_v we_o call_v the_o solitude_n of_o one_o man_n which_o worship_v god_n the_o church_n and_o d._n whitaker_n lib._n 1_o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la cap._n 11._o sect._n 4._o how_o can_v the_o church_n be_v in_o one_o see_v the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o church_n do_v signify_v a_o company_n or_o multitude_n if_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o there_o be_v no_o church_n for_o the_o church_n can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v but_o in_o many_o 4._o jewel_n defence_n ap._n part_n x._o c._n 1._o fulk_n de_fw-fr success_n p._n 89._o beza_n in_o catech._n c_o 5._o brent_n in_o prologue_n q._n 4._o and_o much_o less_o can_v one_o or_o two_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v as_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o expound_v it_o the_o church_n spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o one_o or_o two_o can_v be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o world_n whereupon_o the_o scot_n in_o their_o confession_n cap._n 18._o say_v that_o two_o or_o three_o make_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 192_o who_o say_v that_o the_o church_n signify_v some_o few_o err_v like_v to_o he_o who_o say_v that_o people_n signify_v the_o king_n sure_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o notable_a flock_n which_o consist_v of_o one_o or_o two_o sheep_n a_o worthy_a kingdom_n which_o have_v but_o one_o or_o two_o subject_n and_o a_o strange_a catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n which_o contain_v but_o one_o or_o two_o faithful_a person_n what_o can_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v so_o far_o against_o the_o church_n as_o they_o can_v reduce_v she_o to_o one_o or_o two_o christian_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v this_o then_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v perish_v for_o see_v the_o church_n can_v be_v imagine_v but_o in_o company_n or_o multitude_n who_o say_v ●hat_n the_o church_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o one_o or_o two_o do_v indeed_o
ensnare_v in_o those_o tradition_n of_o man_n but_o rather_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n while_o all_o be_v persuade_v that_o in_o keep_v they_o they_o obtain_v salvation_n in_o omit_v they_o sell_v into_o damnation_n and_o serm_n de_fw-fr simulacris_fw-la fol._n 277_o all_o the_o world_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o other_o abuse_n of_o image_n for_o who_o will_v have_v put_v image_n in_o church_n if_o thereby_o he_o have_v not_o think_v that_o he_o do_v service_n to_o god_n thus_o much_o luther_n 2._o and_o in_o like_a manner_n speak_v the_o lutheran_n the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n cap._n 20_o no_o man_n admonish_v of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o humane_a tradition_n and_o god_n law_n no_o man_n teach_v how_o good_a work_n do_v please_v the_o magdeburgian_o praefat._v centur._n 5_o all_o alike_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o impiety_n and_o egyptian_a darkness_n of_o antichrist_n alike_o all_o alike_o and_o praefat._n centur._n 8_o antichrist_n have_v bring_v under_o his_o yok_n all_o europe_n that_o we_o may_v say_v they_o speak_v nothing_o of_o other_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n europe_n all_o europe_n melancthon_n tom_n 4._o prefat_n in_o act._n ratisbon_n pag._n 730_o only_a luther_n dare_v touch_v the_o error_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o school_n our_o church_n follow_v he_o rather_o than_o the_o consent_n of_o so_o many_o age_n pope_n and_o school_n lobechius_n disput_fw-la 29_o the_o roman_a tyranny_n have_v overwhelm_v the_o church_n and_o hold_v the_o christian_a world_n in_o thraldom_n huber_n in_o antibellarm_n lib._n 4._o world_n the_o christian_a world_n cap._n 3._o our_o church_n have_v a_o new_a form_n not_o use_v at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o pope_n possess_v all_o morgestern_a tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n pag._n 145_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n know_v that_o before_o luther_n all_o church_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o more_o than_o cymmerian_a darkness_n church_n all_o church_n hitherto_o the_o lutheran_n 3._o among_o the_o sacramentary_n caluin_n 2._o institur_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 4_o all_o people_n all_o even_o to_o the_o common_a people_n even_o to_o the_o common_a people_n be_v embue_v with_o this_o principle_n that_o man_n have_v free_a will_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 18._o §_o 18_o the_o abomination_n of_o mass_n proffer_v in_o a_o golden_a cup_n have_v make_v so_o drink_v all_o king_n and_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a that_o they_o put_v the_o whole_a hope_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o it_o alone_o low_a all_o people_n on_o earth_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a which_o very_a word_n be_v repeat_v by_o lobechius_n disput_fw-la 26._o and_o by_o hospin_n epist_n dedicat_fw-la 1_o part_n histor_n and_o part_n 2._o fol._n 25._o and_o the_o say_v caluin_n lib._n 4._o cit_fw-la cap._n 10._o §_o 5_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v cover_v with_o a_o most_o thick_a mist_n of_o ignorance_n and_o lib._n de_fw-fr coen_n pag._n 10_o with_o how_o thick_a a_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v the_o world_n besiege_v again_o when_o luther_n begin_v to_o teach_v he_o so_o handle_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o supper_n as_o that_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o corporal_a presence_n he_o seem_v to_o leave_v such_o as_o all_o then_o receive_v and_o lib._n the_o necess_n reform_v pag._n 46_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v bewitch_v with_o these_o wicked_a opinion_n before_o luther_n appear_v world_n the_o whole_a world_n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n pag._n 130_o all_o thing_n be_v stuff_v with_o pernicious_a error_n there_o be_v none_o which_o true_o esteem_v that_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n none_o which_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o his_o eternal_a priesthood_n and_o the_o intercession_n which_o depend_v thereupon_o none_o rest_v in_o his_o only_a justice_n etc._n no_o man_n so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o etc._n etc._n but_o now_o whereas_o all_o do_v put_v their_o trust_n in_o good_a work_n when_o they_o go_v about_o by_o good_a word_n to_o purchase_v thy_o god_n he_o speak_v to_o grace_n to_o obtain_v justice_n to_o purge_v their_o sin_n to_o satisfy_v thou_o all_o which_o say_v he_o do_v dash_v out_o and_o annihilate_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n respon_n ad_fw-la ve●●pel_n pag._n 354_o see_v the_o whole_a western_a hurch_n as_o he_o call_v it_o defend_v obstinate_o all_o the_o inipiety_n which_o we_o just_o detest_v etc._n etc._n church_n all_o the_o western_a church_n and_o epist_n 141_o we_o be_v comp●●en_v to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a world_n bucer_n lib._n ●0_n u●●●●●●su_fw-la ministerij_fw-la pag._n 602_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o for_o many_o age_n past_o god_n reveal_v to_o no_o nation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o his_o kingdom_n so_o far_o as_o he_o h●●●_n d●●_n in_o our_o age_n l●b_n de_fw-fr concord_n pag._n 660_o this_o error_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n prevail_v with_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n d._n 〈◊〉_d ●it_n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la cap._n 26_o at_o length_n antichrist_n and_o his_o doctrine_n overcome_v all_o man_n hold_v their_o peace_n &_o shameful_o and_o base_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o he_o until_o john_n will_v arise_v who_o stout_o oppose_v himself_o against_o he_o s●eidan_n ep●●t_n ●ed_a 〈◊〉_d h●●tor_n the_o beginning_n of_o protestancy_n be_v slender_a and_o almost_o contemptible_a man_n one_o only_o man_n and_o one_o only_o bear_v the_o ha●●●_n and_o brunt_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n bibliander_n orat._n ad_fw-la p●●●_n o●e●_n germ_n we_o put_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n know_v by_o itself_o most_o clear_a and_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n last_o all_o people_n from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o that_o after_o gregory_n the_o great_a his_o death_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n who_o with_o his_o abom_a nation_n blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n do_v so_o besot_v all_o king_n and_o people_n from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o that_o they_o become_v more_o blockish_a than_o ●rute_n beast_n z●●inglius_n lib._n de_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n cap._n de_fw-fr e●char_n christendom_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o christendom_n i_o think_v no_o man_n will_v deny_v this_o that_o we_o all_o run_v to_o mass_n as_o to_o a_o sacred_a refuge_n daniel_n camier_n epist_n 49_o error_n possess_v no●_n one_o or_o two_o small_a parcel_n but_o apostasy_n turn_v the_o very_a whole_a body_n away_o from_o christ_n hospin_n praefat._n part_n 2._o histo●_n against_o none_o strive_v against_o from_o gregory_n time_n no_o man_n strive_v against_o superstition_n but_o all_o add_v and_o put_v to_o what_o strength_n each_o one_o can_v and_o ep_v dedicat_fw-la part_n ●_o this_o most_o gross_a and_o more_o than_o cymmerian_a darkness_n endure_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n these_o 6._o hundred_o year_n last_o pass_v viretus_fw-la in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o fol._n 224_o the_o whole_a christian_a nation_n nation_n the_o whole_a christian_a nation_n utter_o bewitch_v as_o it_o be_v with_o sorcery_n and_o alienate_v from_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n etc._n etc._n praefat._n syntag._n confess_v when_o all_o be_v cover_v with_o most_o gross_a darkness_n of_o ignorance_n and_o idolatry_n gualther_n praefat._n comment_fw-fr epist_n ad_fw-la rom_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v great_o deceive_v and_o praefat._v in_o ●om_n 2._o zuinglij_fw-la the_o whole_a world_n be_v before_o bewitch_v with_o trust_n in_o outward_a sign_n jezler_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la euchar._n fol._n 24_o the_o former_a age_n be_v every_o where_o drown_v in_o most_o thick_a darkness_n which_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v deny_v brocard_n in_o c._n 2._o apocal._n fol._n 41_o christ_n al_n &_o every_o member_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v allow_v in_o luther_n and_o his_o first_o onset_n against_o the_o papacy_n the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v sound_a miss_v in_o all_o and_o every_o of_o his_o member_n 4._o among_o our_o english_a protestant_n thus_o speak_v the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n pag._n 38_o we_o be_v indeed_o depart_v from_o he_o who_o we_o see_v have_v blind_v the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n his_o majesty_n in_o his_o monitory_a epistle_n pag._n 37_o in_o those_o age_n a_o thick_a and_o more_o blind_a ignorance_n of_o truth_n possess_v the_o world_n pag._n 100_o how_o many_o age_n be_v the_o christian_a people_n hold_v in_o so_o great_a blindness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o pag._n 160_o a_o dark_a night_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n possess_v the_o world_n d._n wh●taker_n con●_n 2._o e●_n 3._o pag._n 467_o the_o plague_n of_o popery_n at_o last_o go_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n pag._n 468_o that_o antichristian_o plague_v rage_v through_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o through_o all_o visible_a church_n and_o cont._n 4._o quaest_n
enemy_n to_o the_o world_n to_o all_o other_o beside_o themselves_o can_v not_o be_v discern_v from_o other_o lurck_v in_o desert_n in_o darkness_n like_o sparkle_n under_o much_o ash_n profess_v not_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o world_n or_o their_o adversary_n but_o at_o most_o before_o themselves_o and_o be_v know_v only_o to_o those_o that_o have_v eye_n that_o be_v to_o themselves_o 3._o the_o same_o also_o they_o mean_v world_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n when_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o all_o that_o be_v out_o of_o it_o junius_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 13_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o visible_a shape_n of_o the_o church_n may_v so_o in_o common_a vanish_v that_o it_o can_v be_v point_v at_o or_o perceive_v of_o the_o world_n and_o again_o the_o church_n be_v oftentimes_o cover_v and_o invisible_a to_o the_o world_n world_n often_o invisible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o cap._n 16_o the_o visible_a fashion_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v hide_v and_o fail_v from_o the_o ungrateful_a world_n and_o in_o his_o theological_a thesis_n cap._n 43_o sometime_o the_o church_n appear_v to_o the_o faithful_a alone_o sometime_o it_o be_v know_v to_o some_o godly_a person_n not_o to_o every_o one_o besnage_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o visible_a and_o invisible_a church_n cap._n 4_o the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o know_v to_o the_o world_n sonis_fw-la in_o his_o answer_n to_o spondé_n cap._n 2._o pag._n 32_o god_n sometime_o take_v away_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n from_o man_n lubbertus_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 4_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v drive_v to_o those_o strait_n that_o it_o may_v lie_v hide_v from_o the_o world_n and_o persecutor_n and_o cap._n 6_o we_o deny_v that_o she_o be_v always_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n which_o he_o repeat_v again_o cap._n 7._o rivet_v in_o his_o epirome_n of_o controversy_n treatise_n 1._o sect_n 37_o it_o happen_v sometime_o that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v invisible_a or_o rather_o hide_v sometime_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o persecutor_n sometime_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o faithful_a themselves_o to_o wit_n of_o some_o and_o the_o most_o of_o they_o d._n whitaker_n controver_n 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 474_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v conserve_v in_o so_o few_o that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o world_n and_o quaest_n 5._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 508_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v always_o be_v know_v and_o manifest_a to_o the_o world_n d._n fulke_o to_o stapletons_n cavillat_n bullinger_n alphonse_n chytreus_n marlorate_a and_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n by_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v protect_v in_o the_o desert_n that_o be_v in_o place_n remote_a from_o the_o sight_n and_o access_n of_o the_o wicked_a again_o the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o apparent_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o in_o his_o book_n of_o succession_n pag._n 19_o it_o be_v not_o doubt_v whether_o the_o ecclesiastical_a succession_n of_o person_n and_o place_n ought_v sometime_o to_o be_v visible_a to_o the_o world_n but_o whether_o at_o all_o time_n and_o pag._n 21_o sometym_v the_o church_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n pag._n 42_o god_n will_v sometime_o provide_v for_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sort_n in_o strike_v her_o enemy_n with_o blindness_n that_o they_o can_v not_o find_v she_o and_o pag._n 129._o the_o external_a policy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o pag._n 366_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o unknown_a to_o the_o world_n d._n white_a in_o his_o way_n to_o the_o church_n pag_n 86_o the_o question_n be_v only_o of_o the_o outward_a state_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v always_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n or_o not_o that_o in_o every_o age_n those_o congregation_n may_v be_v discern_v and_o point_v to_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o we_o say_v not_o pag._n 87_o this_o number_n may_v be_v very_o small_a and_o their_o profession_n so_o secret_a among_o themselves_o that_o the_o world_n and_o such_o as_o love_v not_o the_o truth_n shall_v not_o see_v they_o they_o remain_v so_o hide_v as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o and_o pag._n 97._o the_o church_n may_v be_v hide_v or_o become_v invisible_a sometime_o so_o that_o the_o world_n can_v see_v it_o d._n morton_n in_o the_o 1._o part_n of_o his_o apology_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 16_o defence_n protestant_n proper_a defence_n protestant_n say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o know_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a nor_o to_o her_o enemy_n and_o this_o he_o term_v the_o proper_a defence_n of_o protestant_n and_o cap._n 13_o when_o protestant_a say_v the_o church_n be_v sometime_o eclipse_v like_o the_o moon_n they_o mean_v that_o she_o be_v bring_v sometime_o to_o so_o sew_v that_o it_o be_v not_o see_v but_o of_o those_o which_o be_v in_o she_o but_o not_o open_o know_v by_o her_o visibility_n rite_n or_o visible_a succession_n or_o to_o all_o the_o faithful_a d._n willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_n cont._n 2_o quest_n 1._o pag._n 67_o a_o number_n of_o faithful_a people_n have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n but_o not_o always_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n again_o if_o by_o visible_a they_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v actual_o visible_a we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o always_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o for_o to_o maintain_v the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v vanish_v may_o hide_v may_v fail_v from_o the_o world_n be_v often_o take_v away_o from_o man_n by_o god_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o church_n sometime_o be_v unknown_a or_o appear_v not_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n sometime_o know_v only_o to_o the_o faithful_a &_o yet_o not_o to_o all_o they_o neither_o but_o to_o some_o and_o the_o few_o of_o they_o and_o that_o neither_o by_o any_o visible_a rite_n nor_o by_o visible_a succession_n and_o that_o this_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n they_o term_v the_o proper_a defence_n of_o protestant_n to_o wit_n for_o to_o defend_v the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n which_o kind_n of_o defence_n have_v neither_o truth_n nor_o probability_n and_o though_o it_o have_v yet_o will_v it_o not_o suffice_v to_o defend_v the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n time_n when_o it_o be_v invisible_a not_o only_o to_o the_o world_n to_o enemy_n to_o stranger_n to_o some_o or_o most_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o as_o shall_v manifest_o appear_v hereafter_o 4._o if_o any_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o protestant_n teach_v that_o their_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n because_o the_o true_a church_n can_v be_v see_v but_o by_o faith_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o suppose_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v but_o prove_v second_o that_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v unknown_a not_o only_o to_o the_o world_n but_o also_o to_o some_o or_o most_o of_o the_o faithful_a last_o that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v know_v two_o way_n one_o way_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n a_o other_o to_o be_v know_v distinct_o from_o all_o other_o church_n infidel_n the_o true_a church_n discern_v from_o all_o other_o church_n even_o by_o infidel_n as_o christ_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o messiah_n only_o by_o his_o disciple_n but_o yet_o he_o be_v know_v distinct_o from_o all_o other_o man_n by_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o by_o christians_n but_o be_v know_v distinct_o from_o other_o writing_n by_o infidel_n and_o in_o christ_n time_n his_o company_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n only_o by_o the_o faithful_a but_o know_v distinct_o from_o all_o other_o company_n or_o church_n even_o by_o infidel_n and_o the_o same_o we_o say_v of_o his_o church_n from_o his_o time_n unto_o our_o day_n that_o it_o be_v and_o ever_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n only_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o know_v and_o see_v distinct_o from_o all_o other_o church_n even_o by_o the_o world_n &_o infidel_n and_o of_o his_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n and_o visibility_n wherewith_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v and_o visible_a not_o only_o to_o the_o faithful_a
but_o even_o to_o infidel_n and_o of_o the_o opposite_a ignorance_n or_o invisibility_n we_o speak_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o protestant_n also_o as_o appear_v by_o their_o testimony_n already_o rehearse_v &_o shall_v yet_o more_o by_o those_o which_o we_o shall_v repeat_v hereafter_o invisible_a that_o they_o say_v their_o church_n be_v simple_o invisible_a 5._o further_o more_v therefore_o protestant_n do_v not_o only_o teach_v that_o their_o church_n may_v and_o have_v be_v invisible_a respective_o that_o be_v to_o this_o or_o that_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o we_o have_v already_o hear_v but_o also_o they_o grant_v that_o it_o may_v be_v simple_o and_o absolute_o invisible_a luther_n upon_o the_o 90._o psalm_n tom_fw-mi 3._o fol._n 493_o the_o church_n be_v and_o abide_v in_o popery_n but_o true_o so_o hide_v as_o to_o one_o that_o will_v judge_v by_o the_o appearance_n the_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o where_n at_o all_o where_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o where_o and_o upon_o the_o psalm_n 22._o fol._n 344_o the_o church_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o dust_n of_o death_n so_o that_o not_o where_o there_o appear_v any_o show_n or_o trace_v of_o she_o and_o upon_o the_o first_o chap._n of_o micheas_n tom_n 4._o fol._n 434_o appear_v no_o trace_n of_o church_n appear_v in_o the_o former_a age_n there_o be_v no_o true_a form_n of_o religion_n extant_a the_o magdeburgian_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o their_o 10._o century_n it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o find_v where_o &_o which_o the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o age_n extant_a no_o form_n extant_a likewise_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o 11._o century_n every_o where_o be_v darkness_n neither_o dare_v the_o church_n mutter_v any_o thing_n gerlachius_n in_o his_o 22._o disput_fw-la of_o the_o church_n pag._n 927._o write_v that_o before_o luther_n the_o true_a church_n withdraw_v itself_o from_o the_o eye_n &_o sight_n of_o man_n into_o lurk_a hole_n and_o hide_v herself_o in_o darkness_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o his_o supplication_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n tom_n 1._o fol._n 120_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n lie_v a_o long_a time_n hide_v hospinian_n in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o history_n from_o the_o year_n 1200._o until_o the_o year_n 1515._o the_o church_n lie_v miserable_o overwhelm_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o most_o deep_a and_o most_o strong_a deluge_n caluin_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o institution_n god_n permit_v that_o in_o former_a age_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o face_n of_o the_o true_a church_n extant_a extant_a no_o face_n of_o the_o church_n extant_a and_o add_v of_o his_o own_o doctrine_n it_o lay_v a_o long_a time_n unknown_a and_o bury_v again_o for_o some_o age_n all_o thing_n be_v drown_v in_o deep_a darkness_n and_o upon_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n vers_fw-la 6._o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n and_o in_o his_o preface_n upon_o isaias_n touch_v the_o oveward_n show_v of_o the_o church_n nothing_o for_o many_o age_n appear_v but_o desolate_a and_o confuse_a waist_n on_o all_o side_n beza_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 99_o the_o church_n lurk_v in_o the_o wilderness_n pareus_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o grace_n and_o freewill_n cap._n 6_o in_o constantine_n time_n the_o church_n begin_v to_o wa●_n sick_a to_o death_n notwithstanding_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v but_o where_o in_o the_o desert_n as_o in_o the_o world_n withdraw_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n sadeel_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o vocarion_n of_o minister_n pag._n 533_o after_o the_o church_n have_v a_o long_a time_n lurk_v the_o lord_n call_v she_o at_o this_o time_n into_o light_n discern_v can_v not_o be_v discern_v voyen_n in_o his_o preface_n of_o catalogue_n doct_n the_o true_a visible_a church_n can_v not_o be_v discern_v no_o tract_n of_o god_n grace_n appear_v in_o his_o church_n the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n part_n 4._o cap._n 4._o divis_fw-la 2._o say_v that_o 40._o year_n ago_o truth_n first_o begin_v to_o spring_v unknown_a at_o that_o time_n and_o unheard_a of_o of_o unheard_a of_o d._n humphrey_n unto_o the_o 3._o reason_n of_o f._n campian_n pag._n 286_o why_o the_o picture_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o late_a time_n can_v be_v see_v of_o our_o adversary_n or_o draw_v of_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 288_o if_o the_o only_a name_n of_o our_o father_n be_v extant_a who_o either_o by_o teach_v extant_a not_o so_o much_o as_o their_o name_n extant_a or_o monish_v or_o write_v do_v help_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v see_v another_o rank_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o church_n another_o succession_n of_o bispop_n another_o picture_n of_o protestant_n and_o pag._n 291_o and_o yet_o they_o will_v object_v that_o our_o church_n be_v hide_v which_o they_o no_o where_n suffer_v alive_a d._n whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 2._o quest_n 3._o pag._n 479_o when_o they_o ask_v of_o we_o where_o be_v our_o church_n in_o time_n pass_v for_o so_o many_o age_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o close_a wilderness_n that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v hide_v lay_v secret_a flee_v the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o quest_n 5._o c._n 3._o pag._n 499_o luther_n bring_v the_o faith_n out_o of_o darkness_n wherein_o before_o it_o lay_v drown_v and_o cap._n 4._o pag._n 502_o our_o church_n be_v then_o but_o you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v not_o visible_a visible_a not_o visible_a what_o then_o therefore_o be_v it_o not_o no._n for_o it_o lay_v hide_v in_o the_o wilderness_n m._n perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n colum_fw-la 788_o we_o say_v that_o many_o age_n pass_v before_o this_o our_o age_n that_o universal_a defection_n overwhelm_v almost_o all_o the_o world_n visible_a not_o visible_a and_o that_o our_o church_n be_v not_o visible_a at_o that_o tyme._n m._n base_a in_o his_o 1._o century_n of_o the_o writer_n of_o britanny_n cap._n 4_o from_o phocas_n until_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n lay_v so_o long_o in_o lurk_v hole_n m._n downham_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o antichrist_n cap._n 2_o the_o general_a defection_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n begin_v to_o work_v in_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n m._n powell_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o antichrist_n c._n 23_o our_o religion_n lie_v long_a time_n unknown_a and_o bury_v bury_v unknown_a &_o bury_v and_o m._n cox_n chancellor_n of_o oxford_n in_o king_n edward_n 6._o time_n exhort_v the_o university_n man_n to_o protestantisme_n bid_v they_o pluck_v out_o truth_n lie_v long_a time_n lurk_v in_o trophonius_n den_n thus_o clear_o and_o thus_o many_o way_n they_o simple_o and_o absolute_o grant_v that_o their_o church_n be_v invisible_a unknown_a and_o bury_v before_o luther_n arise_v 6._o the_o same_o also_o they_o intend_v invisible_a they_o teach_v the_o church_n may_v be_v simple_o invisible_a when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v invisible_a for_o they_o will_v never_o say_v so_o unless_o they_o know_v that_o such_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n begin_v luther_n upon_o the_o 90._o psalm_n tom_fw-mi 3._o fol._n 495_o sometime_o the_o church_n be_v most_o weak_a and_o so_o disperse_v as_o it_o appear_v not_o where_o hutter_n in_o his_o analysis_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n pag._n 448_o appear_v no_o where_o appear_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o may_v fall_v out_o that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v lie_v hide_v and_o her_o visible_a form_n not_o at_o all_o time_n appear_v to_o the_o eye_n herbrand_n in_o his_o compend_n of_o divinity_n place_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 502._o write_v that_o the_o faithful_a sometime_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o eye_n even_o of_o the_o godly_a godly_a not_o to_o the_o godly_a kemnitius_n in_o his_o common_a place_n tit_n the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n pag._n 78_o sometime_o the_o true_a church_n another_o bastard_n and_o company_n prevail_a and_o overtop_v do_v so_o as_o it_o were_o hide_v that_o elias_n may_v say_v i_o be_o le●t_o alone_o gerlachius_n in_o his_o 22._o dispute_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 946_o no_o sure_o if_o at_o some_o time_n the_o church_n be_v not_o see_v with_o corporal_a eye_n therefore_o she_o be_v not_o caluin_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o institution_n sometime_o god_n take_v away_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n of_o his_o church_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n sometime_o the_o church_n have_v no_o apparent_a form_n and_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o true_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 332_o the_o church_n sometime_o lie_v hide_v and_o fly_v the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o in_o his_o antidote_n of_o the_o 18._o article_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n we_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n
god_n and_o beza_n write_v a_o book_n of_o this_o title_n of_o the_o true_a and_o visible_a mark_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n d._n whitaker_n in_o answer_n of_o the_o 3._o reason_n of_o f._n campian_n that_o we_o judge_v to_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o increase_v and_o conserve_v christ_n word_n that_o it_o use_v the_o sacrament_n entire_o and_o pure_o these_o we_o defend_v to_o be_v the_o most_o true_a and_o essential_a property_n of_o the_o church_n take_v these_o away_o and_o you_o will_v leave_v nothing_o but_o the_o carcase_n of_o the_o church_n again_o they_o contain_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n which_o if_o they_o be_v present_a they_o make_v the_o church_n and_o take_v it_o away_o if_o they_o be_v take_v away_o and_o d._n feild_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 11_o we_o say_v that_o that_o society_n wherein_o that_o outward_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v preserve_v be_v that_o true_a church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n final_o to_o omit_v the_o word_n of_o other_o the_o same_o teach_v wigand_n in_o his_o method_n of_o doctrine_n cap._n 19_o gesner_n in_o his_o 24._o place_n of_o the_o church_n the_o magdeburgian_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o their_o 6._o century_n heshusius_fw-la in_o cap._n 1.1_o ad_fw-la cor._n soterius_n in_o his_o method_n title_n of_o the_o church_n pelargus_n in_o his_o compend_n of_o divinity_n loc_fw-la 7._o sohnius_n in_o his_o thesis_n of_o the_o church_n bullinger_n in_o his_o catechism_n fol._n 44._o aretius_n in_o his_o place_n part_v 3._o fol._n 50._o thesis_n of_o geneva_n disput_fw-la 74._o concession_n summeoin_v protest_v former_a concession_n thus_o thou_o see_v good_a reader_n that_o according_a to_o the_o manifold_a judgement_n of_o protestant_n a_o part_n of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o essence_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o life_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o proper_a church_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n proper_o speak_v when_o it_o call_v she_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o the_o church_n proper_o so_o term_v and_o final_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o i_o say_v it_o be_v of_o the_o definition_n and_o essence_n a_o mark_n of_o this_o church_n to_o be_v a_o visible_a company_n profess_v the_o faith_n partake_v the_o sacrament_n mutual_o confirm_v themselves_o and_o that_o otherwise_o it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v but_o a_o carcase_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o it_o impli_v manifest_a contradiction_n that_o there_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n have_v be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o not_o a_o visible_a company_n because_o nothing_o can_v be_v without_o all_o its_o essential_a part_n the_o protestant_a church_n therefore_o which_o as_o we_o head_n be_v before_o luther_n time_n altogether_o invisible_a be_v no_o true_a and_o proper_a church_n but_o to_o use_v their_o term_n a_o platonical_a idea_n or_o a_o carcase_n of_o a_o church_n if_o any_o reply_n that_o when_o protestant_n affirm_v the_o foresay_a definition_n property_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n they_o mean_v not_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o which_o be_v simple_o and_o absolute_o the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o which_o be_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n i_o ask_v why_o then_o do_v they_o simple_o call_v it_o the_o true_a church_n if_o they_o do_v not_o so_o mean_a why_o be_v not_o their_o word_n conformable_a to_o their_o meaning_n beside_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o give_v the_o foresay_a definition_n and_o mark_n they_o call_v not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n but_o also_o the_o church_n proper_o so_o term_v the_o spouse_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o such_o like_a which_o can_v agree_v to_o any_o which_o be_v but_o a_o church_n in_o appearance_n only_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n but_o only_o to_o that_o which_o be_v the_o church_n in_o very_a deed_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n further_n more_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n these_o two_o term_n true_a and_o visible_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n do_v one_o destroy_v the_o other_o as_o these_o two_o true_a and_o paint_a exclude_v each_o other_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o man_n for_o they_o imagine_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v a_o society_n in_o something_o that_o be_v invisible_a to_o wit_n in_o justification_n and_o predestination_n whereupon_o they_o deny_v any_o ill_a or_o reprobate_n christian_n to_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n wherefore_o as_o he_o shall_v speak_v fond_o who_o shall_v say_v a_o true_a paint_a man_n so_o according_a to_o their_o own_o opinion_n they_o speak_v as_o fond_o when_o they_o say_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n but_o as_o we_o can_v only_o say_v the_o true_a picture_n of_o a_o man_n attribute_v the_o word_n true_a to_o the_o picture_n not_o to_o the_o man_n so_o they_o shall_v only_o the_o true_a appearance_n or_o show_v of_o the_o church_n glue_v the_o word_n true_a to_o the_o show_n not_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o but_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v so_o lest_o when_o they_o inquire_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n church_n why_o protestant_n sometime_n call_v the_o visible_a visible_a church_n the_o true_a church_n it_o shall_v appear_v that_o they_o seek_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n indeed_o but_o only_o of_o the_o show_n shadow_n or_o shape_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o in_o very_a truth_n they_o seek_v but_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o invisible_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o the_o just_a and_o elect_v which_o alone_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n have_v no_o certain_a mark_n else_o we_o shall_v know_v certain_o who_o be_v the_o just_a and_o elect_v and_o this_o themselves_o confess_v for_o thus_o write_v d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 8_o church_n protestant_n give_v no_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a &_o catholic_a church_n the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n again_o we_o say_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n simple_o so_o call_v be_v know_v to_o god_n alone_o and_o d._n humphrey_n to_o 3._o reason_n of_o f._n campian_n pa._n 281._o say_v that_o the_o mark_n do_v not_o reach_v unto_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a because_o as_o i_o say_v otherwise_o we_o shall_v know_v who_o be_v the_o just_a and_o elect_v 4._o if_o any_o again_o reply_n that_o when_o protestant_n say_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n they_o mean_v the_o visible_a church_n true_a in_o doctrine_n in_o which_o speech_n there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n according_a to_o their_o own_o opinion_n because_o they_o admit_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v the_o society_n in_o true_a doctrine_n and_o right_a use_n of_o sacrament_n into_o which_o church_n or_o society_n the_o wicked_a or_o reprobate_n may_v enter_v may_v be_v true_a in_o doctrine_n though_o they_o grant_v not_o that_o such_o a_o church_n or_o society_n be_v the_o true_a church_n in_o nature_n or_o essence_n which_o perhaps_o vorstius_n mean_v in_o his_o antibellarm_n pa._n 180._o when_o he_o say_v the_o outward_a church_n be_v not_o without_o cause_n call_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n i_o answer_v if_o they_o so_o mean_v why_o do_v they_o not_o speak_v so_o be_v they_o ignorant_a that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o speech_n and_o another_o to_o be_v true_a in_o nature_n as_o a_o liar_n be_v a_o true_a man_n in_o nature_n of_o man_n but_o not_o true_a in_o his_o speech_n or_o if_o they_o do_v know_v this_o why_o do_v they_o abuse_v the_o word_n and_o their_o hearer_n moreover_o though_o in_o this_o sense_n their_o word_n do_v not_o destroy_v themselves_o as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o former_a yet_o fond_o shall_v they_o as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v assign_v the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n for_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o doctrine_n for_o this_o be_v to_o assign_v a_o thing_n for_o a_o mark_n of_o itself_o as_o if_o to_o know_v a_o true_a man_n of_o his_o word_n one_o shall_v give_v this_o mark_n that_o it_o be_v such_o as_o speak_v truth_n beside_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o define_v what_o be_v a_o true_a man_n then_o to_o give_v the_o mark_n to_o know_v who_o be_v a_o true_a man_n and_o yet_o mark_n be_v give_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n not_o what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 5._o if_o yet_o any_o reply_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o
society_n in_o profession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o right_a use_n of_o sacrament_n be_v term_v of_o protestant_n the_o true_a church_n not_o because_o this_o church_n or_o society_n be_v of_o itself_o the_o true_a church_n or_o the_o society_n institute_v by_o god_n but_o because_o always_o in_o or_o under_o it_o there_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o wit_v the_o society_n in_o justice_n and_o predestination_n by_o reason_n that_o in_o every_o company_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v true_a doctrine_n and_o right_o use_v the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v some_o who_o be_v sociate_v and_o unite_v in_o justice_n and_o predestination_n which_o d._n whitaker_n intimate_v when_o cont._n 2._o quest_n 4._o cap._n 1_o pag._n 485._o he_o say_v the_o visible_a church_n which_o hold_v and_o profess_v true_a say_v be_v the_o true_a church_n only_o of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o predestinate_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o suppose_v a_o thing_n doubtful_a and_o perhaps_o false_a for_o what_o certainty_n can_v there_o be_v that_o in_o every_o particular_a company_n of_o they_o who_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n &_o right_o use_v the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v always_o a_o company_n of_o the_o just_a and_o elect_v when_o as_o christ_n say_v many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v ●0_n matt._n ●0_n especial_o if_o as_o protestant_n say_v one_o or_o two_o make_v a_o church_n sure_o danaeus_n cont._n 4._o pag._n 689._o seem_v to_o deny_v this_o say_v these_o visible_a company_n be_v sometime_o a_o part_n of_o that_o true_a church_n sometime_o none_o but_o admit_v that_o in_o every_o company_n of_o true_a professor_n there_o be_v always_o a_o company_n of_o just_a and_o elect_v what_o reason_n be_v this_o to_o term_v the_o society_n in_o profession_n of_o true_a faith_n the_o true_a church_n if_o in_o deed_n the_o society_n in_o justice_n &_o predestination_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n this_o will_v suffice_v to_o say_v that_o the_o apparent_a church_n can_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o true_a church_n but_o not_o to_o call_v that_o society_n the_o true_a church_n which_o indeed_o be_v only_o the_o outward_a appearance_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o much_o less_o will_v it_o suffice_v to_o call_v it_o the_o church_n proper_o so_o term_v the_o spouse_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o protestant_n have_v term_v the_o visible_a church_n neither_o can_v these_o epithet_n or_o name_n be_v give_v to_o any_o other_o society_n then_o to_o that_o which_o have_v the_o true_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o church_n indeed_o because_o they_o signify_v as_o proper_o and_o express_o that_o only_a church_n as_o she_o can_v be_v express_v of_o we_o by_o any_o word_n whatsoever_o and_o since_o protestant_n have_v give_v they_o all_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n they_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o she_o have_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o very_a true_a church_n indeed_o and_o consequent_o that_o a_o invisible_a church_n be_v no_o true_a church_n indeed_o 6._o four_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a invisible_a protestant_n somtym_n say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v invisible_a because_o oftentimes_o protestant_n do_v confess_v it_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n chap._n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v principal_o the_o society_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o heart_n which_o yet_o have_v her_o outward_a mark_n that_o she_o may_v be_v know_v luther_n upon_o the_o 4._o chap._n of_o genesis_n tom_n 6._o fol._n 56_o the_o church_n be_v never_o so_o void_a of_o external_a mark_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v not_o know_v where_o god_n be_v certain_o to_o be_v sound_a and_o upon_o 51._o psalm_n tom_fw-mi 3._o fol._n 474_o for_o christ_n will_v not_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o world_n but_o will_v be_v preach_v not_o between_o wall_n but_o upon_o the_o house_n top_n melancthon_n upon_o the_o 11._o of_o daniel_n tom_n 2._o pag._n 511_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o visible_a company_n again_o we_o seigne_n not_o a_o invisible_a church_n like_v to_o a_o platonical_a idea_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o 3._o tome_fw-mi he_o think_v it_o so_o absurd_a to_o put_v a_o invisible_a church_n as_o he_o say_v to_o what_o tend_v that_o perdigious_a speech_n invible_n monstruous_a to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v invible_n which_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o visible_a church_n we_o must_v needs_o confess_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o upon_o the_o 3._o chap._n 1._o tim._n tom_n 4._o pag._n 398_o other_o say_v he_o set_v aside_o whole_o the_o external_a show_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o invisible_a church_n as_o of_o a_o platonical_a idea_n which_o be_v not_o where_o see_v or_o hear_v kemnice_n in_o his_o common_a place_n title_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 3_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o know_v where_o and_o which_o be_v the_o church_n therefore_o she_o must_v be_v know_v not_o to_o god_n only_o but_o also_o to_o we_o and_o thereupon_o be_v define_v to_o be_v the_o visible_a company_n of_o they_o who_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o right_o use_v the_o sacrament_n james_n andrews_n in_o his_o book_n against_o hosius_n pag._n 210_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v a_o visible_a company_n of_o teacher_n and_o hearer_n again_o the_o church_n be_v and_o be_v call_v a_o company_n of_o man_n choose_v of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sound_v incorrupt_a etc._n etc._n hunnius_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o freewill_n pag._n 91_o god_n in_o all_o time_n have_v place_v his_o church_n as_o in_o a_o high_a place_n and_o have_v exalt_v it_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o people_n and_o nation_n hutter_n in_o his_o analysis_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n pag._n 430_o the_o elect_v be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n no_o if_o you_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o church_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o inward_a say_v in_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o the_o outward_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n now_o as_o far_o as_o this_o in_o outward_a rite_n be_v perform_v so_o far_o the_o true_a church_n true_o be_v visible_a beurlin_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o refutation_n of_o sotus_n i_o confess_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v always_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v visible_a and_o he_o add_v that_o all_o confess_v the_o same_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o gesner_n loc_fw-fr 24._o by_o adam_n francis_n in_o his_o 11._o place_n and_o by_o other_o lutheran_n among_o the_o sacramentary_n thus_o write_v vrsin_n in_o prolegomenis_fw-la ad_fw-la catechcsin_fw-la pag._n 2_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v see_v in_o this_o world_n that_o the_o elect_n may_v know_v unto_o what_o company_n they_o must_v adjoine_v themselves_o in_o this_o life_n junius_n cont._n 4._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 13._o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v whole_o want_v a_o visible_a form_n keckerman_n in_o the_o 3._o book_n of_o his_o theological_a system_a write_v that_o the_o church_n must_v always_o be_v sensible_a that_o other_o nation_n may_v know_v to_o what_o church_n they_o ought_v to_o adjoine_v themselves_o and_o that_o confession_n of_o sincere_a doctrine_n can_v never_o fail_v whole_o nor_o the_o visible_a church_n whole_o err_v danaeus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n dare_v to_o say_v that_o who_o deni_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o visible_a to_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o without_o doubt_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o holy_a scripture_n among_o our_o english_a protestant_n m._n hooker_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n pag._n 126_o god_n have_v have_v ever_o &_o ever_o shall_v have_v some_o church_n visible_a upon_o earth_n d._n field_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 10_o for_o see_v the_o church_n be_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v unless_o he_o make_v confession_n unto_o salvation_n for_o faith_n hide_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o conceal_v do_v not_o suffice_v it_o can_v be_v but_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n must_v by_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n make_v themselves_o know_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o by_o their_o profession_n and_o practice_n they_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o other_o man_n and_o d._n white_a in_o defence_n of_o his_o way_n cap._n 4._o pag._n 390_o i_o acknowledge_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n who_o have_v leave_v the_o record_n of_o history_n to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n and_o free_o grant_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v false_a if_o the_o
14._o nine_o invisible_a nothing_o can_v make_v the_o church_n invisible_a i_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v invisible_a because_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o can_v make_v that_o the_o church_n profess_v not_o her_o faith_n for_o if_o any_o thing_n most_o of_o all_o persecution_n but_o as_o the_o water_n do_v lift_v up_o the_o arck_n of_o nöe_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n so_o do_v persecution_n raise_v up_o the_o church_n and_o make_v she_o more_o know_v and_o as_o the_o heaven_n in_o day_n time_n all_o shine_v but_o at_o might_n glitter_v in_o the_o star_n so_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o peace_n flourish_v in_o all_o her_o member_n but_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n be_v most_o glorious_a in_o her_o constant_a soldier_n and_o there_o be_v many_o and_o most_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n how_o that_o the_o church_n be_v by_o persecution_n make_v more_o pure_a more_o famous_a and_o more_o plentiful_a which_o one_o may_v read_v in_o ss_z justin_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n gregory_n nazianzen_n hilary_n ambrose_n hierome_n augustin_n leo_n theodorete_n gregory_n the_o great_a &_o other_o i_o according_a to_o my_o purpose_n will_v allege_v only_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n luther_n upon_o the_o 1._o psalm_n tom_fw-mi 3._o fol._n 125_o the_o faithful_a while_o they_o be_v kill_v do_v increase_v while_o they_o be_v diminish_v do_v multiply_v and_o upon_o the_o 9_o of_o isaias_n tom_n 4._o fol._n 84_o the_o church_n be_v make_v fruithfull_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o increase_v caluin_n against_o seruet_fw-la pag._n 595_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a church_n rise_v under_o persecution_n flourish_v under_o the_o same_o the_o like_a he_o have_v upon_o the_o 2._o tim._n cap._n 2._o and_o philip_n 1_o lubberia_fw-la lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 3_o the_o true_a church_n grow_v under_o suffer_a persecution_n and_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o english_a church_n in_o the_o end_n this_o flame_n the_o more_o it_o be_v keep_v down_o so_o much_o the_o more_o with_o great_a source_n and_o strength_n do_v it_o break_v out_o and_o fly_v abroad_o d._n fulke_o of_o succession_n pag._n 255_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v extinguish_v by_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o material_a sword_n that_o i_o grant_v it_o give_v her_o occasion_n to_o delate_v and_o extend_v her_o bound_n for_o so_o as_o tertullian_n say_v well_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n this_o all_o that_o be_v not_o stark_o blind_a do_v see_v to_o have_v happen_v to_o our_o church_n for_o how_o much_o the_o more_o antichrist_n rage_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n so_o much_o the_o more_o famous_a she_o become_v and_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2_o quest_n 5._o cap._n 4._o pag._n 501_o persecution_n destroy_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o make_v it_o more_o famous_a and_o cont._n 4._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 669_o when_o tyrant_n ra●ed_v against_o the_o church_n religion_n suffer_v no_o loss_n yea_o then_o most_o of_o all_o flourish_v how_o then_o can_v the_o protestant_a church_n if_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n become_v invisible_a before_o luther_n arise_v by_o persecution_n 15._o if_o any_o reply_n that_o this_o be_v true_a of_o violent_a persecution_n of_o the_o heathen_n but_o not_o of_o persecution_n by_o fraud_n &_o deceit_n as_o be_v the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n which_o make_v the_o protestant_a church_n in_o former_a time_n to_o become_v invisible_a i_o answer_v that_o first_o he_o speak_v voluntary_a without_o all_o proof_n again_o that_o the_o english_a apology_n and_o d._n fulke_o speak_v namely_o of_o antichrists_n persecution_n mean_v the_o pope_n which_o they_o say_v have_v since_o luther_n time_n make_v their_o church_n more_o famous_a how_o then_o can_v it_o before_o his_o time_n make_v it_o invisible_a moreover_o the_o scripture_n and_o holy_a father_n teach_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v rage_v most_o cruel_o against_o the_o church_n and_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v antichrist_n have_v be_v so_o cruel_a against_o protestant_n as_o any_o herode_fw-la nero_n domitian_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v mild_a if_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o he_o final_o heretic_n do_v by_o fraud_n persecute_v the_o church_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o must_v be_v heresy_n 10._o 1._o cor._n 10._o that_o those_o who_o be_v try_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a so_o far_o be_v fraudulent_a persecution_n from_o make_v the_o church_n invisible_a as_o it_o make_v the_o try_a faithful_a to_o be_v manifest_a and_o both_o s._n augustin_n oftentimes_o &_o other_o observe_v that_o heresy_n have_v be_v occasion_n of_o great_a increase_n of_o knowledge_n unto_o the_o church_n 16._o ten_o i_o prove_v church_n protestant_n infer_v a_o invisible_a church_n to_o be_v no_o church_n that_o the_o church_n can_v become_v invisible_a because_o protestant_n do_v often_o infer_v such_o and_o such_o a_o church_n or_o company_n not_o to_o have_v be_v because_o it_o be_v not_o see_v as_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o protocoll_n of_o frankentall_a they_o prove_v the_o anabaptist_n be_v not_o before_o the_o year_n 1525._o because_o say_v they_o if_o you_o read_v all_o story_n you_o shall_v find_v no_o people_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n like_a unto_o you_o but_o by_o the_o same_o manner_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n be_v not_o before_o luther_n for_o as_o spalatinus_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o their_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n boast_v one_o shall_v not_o find_v such_o a_o confession_n neither_o in_o any_o history_n neither_o in_o any_o ancient_a father_n or_o doctor_n german_n in_o luther_n tom_n 9_o german_n and_o fox_n in_o his_o protestation_n before_o his_o act_n say_v that_o of_o their_o church_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o history_n luther_n also_o upon_o the_o 3._o chap._n ad_fw-la galat._n tom_n 5._o fol._n 358._o write_v that_o of_o his_o principal_a opinion_n nothing_o be_v read_v in_o book_n of_o monk_n of_o canonist_n of_o scholman_n yea_o nor_o in_o the_o book_n of_o ancient_a father_n there_o be_v a_o wonderful_a silence_n of_o it_o for_o many_o age_n in_o all_o school_n and_o church_n likewise_o when_o one_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n caluin_n in_o his_o answer_n ad_fw-la versipellem_fw-la pag._n 359._o say_v i_o do_v not_o gainsay_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a if_o he_o can_v show_v a_o church_n at_o rome_n which_o suppose_v that_o no_o church_n be_v where_o it_o can_v be_v show_v when_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o beside_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v in_o elias_n time_n church_n among_o the_o gentile_n d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 475._o thus_o answer_v if_o they_o say_v that_o god_n have_v other_o church_n let_v they_o show_v they_o and_o tell_v which_o they_o be_v and_o where_o they_o be_v and_o d._n rainolds_n in_o his_o 12._o prefection_n upon_o the_o scripture_n col_fw-fr 106._o infer_v that_o none_o of_o the_o synagogue_n do_v believe_v those_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o deny_v to_o be_v canonical_a because_o we_o can_v name_v any_o when_o d._n harding_n say_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o heresy_n m._n jewel_n art_n 2._o divis_fw-la 8._o pag._n 75._o deny_v it_o say_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a heresy_n that_o never_o have_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_v nor_o defender_n nor_o reprover_n nor_o mouth_n to_o speak_v it_o nor_o ear_n to_o hear_v it_o nor_o pen_n to_o write_v nor_o tim_a to_o last_v in_o nor_o place_n to_o rest_v in_o and_o if_o a_o heresy_n must_v be_v hear_v of_o certain_o much_o more_o the_o church_n of_o god_n when_o beza_n impugn_a the_o arian_n thus_o he_o discourse_v epist_n 18._o pag_n 98_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a we_o bid_v they_o show_v where_o there_o church_n have_v be_v since_o from_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o never_o any_o one_o hold_v any_o such_o thing_n who_o be_v not_o condemn_v by_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o add_v epist_n 81_o certain_o there_o have_v be_v no_o true_a church_n if_o these_o man_n teach_v truth_n when_o the_o bohemian_o will_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v borrow_v nothing_o of_o the_o anabaptist_n thus_o they_o write_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o their_o confession_n our_o congregation_n be_v long_a time_n before_o any_o thing_n be_v hear_v of_o the_o anabaptist_n or_o their_o name_n know_v in_o the_o world_n final_o m._n bancroft_n in_o his_o survey_v of_o the_o
the_o word_n that_o it_o leave_v to_o be_v a_o church_n in_o cap._n 17._o joannis_n tom_n 5._o fol._n 203_o for_o god_n have_v not_o determine_v to_o conserve_v they_o the_o faithful_a without_o outward_a mean_n albeit_o he_o can_v do_v it_o also_o upon_o the_o 1._o chap._n of_o zacharias_n although_o god_n can_v teach_v man_n the_o gospel_n without_o sermon_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o and_o of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n tom_fw-mi 7._o fol._n 149_o what_o can_v or_o will_v the_o people_n of_o god_n believe_v unless_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sound_v there_o melancthon_n in_o locis_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3._o cap._n de_fw-la libero_fw-la arb_n fol._n 311_o god_n gather_v a_o true_a church_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o otherwise_o kemnice_n in_o the_o 2._o part_n of_o his_o examen_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr sacramento_n ordinis_fw-la pag._n 391_o god_n by_o his_o certain_a counsel_n have_v determine_v that_o he_o will_v dispense_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n not_o immediate_o by_o infuse_v new_a and_o peculiar_a revelation_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n without_o any_o mean_n but_o by_o the_o outward_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n caluin_n 4_o institut_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 5_o howbeit_o god_n power_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o outward_a mean_n nevertheless_o be_v have_v tie_v we_o to_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o preach_v many_o be_v push_v on_o by_o pride_n disdain_n and_o emulation_n to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v profit_v enough_o by_o private_a read_n and_o meditate_v and_o §_o 4_o the_o knowledge_n of_o she_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v profitable_a to_o we_o yea_o necessary_a for_o we_o can_v come_v to_o life_n unless_o she_o conceive_v we_o in_o her_o womb_n bear_v we_o nourish_v we_o with_o her_o dugg_n and_o in_o 1._o tim._n cap._n 3_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v which_o god_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n be_v the_o only_a instrument_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o go_v not_o out_o of_o man_n mind_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v take_v away_o god_n truth_n will_v fall_v down_o beza_n epist_n 20_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o faith_n come_v of_o hear_v and_o therefore_o preach_v must_v go_v before_o faith_n tayé_fw-fr in_o his_o enchiridion_n disput_fw-la 60_o the_o necessity_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n appear_v in_o that_o without_o it_o we_o can_v not_o know_v the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o his_o will_n therein_o reveal_v unto_o us._n d._n whitaker_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la cap._n 9_o sect_n 9_o pag._n 106_o the_o ministry_n be_v take_v away_o neither_o faith_n nor_o charity_n nor_o obedience_n nor_o any_o virtue_n will_v remain_v safe_a and_o cap._n 2._o sect_n 6._o pag._n 37_o we_o can_v at_o all_o believe_v without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 15_o sect_n 20._o pag._n 478_o i_o affirm_v determine_v and_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n to_o salvation_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n again_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o pastor_n we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v hope_v that_o without_o this_o ministry_n say_v can_v grow_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o cap._n 5._o sect_n 2_o i_o confess_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v most_o necessary_a and_o cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 19_o pag._n 550_o we_o never_o come_v to_o faith_n without_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n d._n fu●ke_n the_o success_n pag._n 30_o the_o people_n salvation_n can_v be_v procure_v without_o preach_v and_o pag_n 162_o no_o christian_a will_v deny_v preach_v of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n m._n latimer_n in_o his_o sermon_n fol._n 38_o take_v away_o preach_v and_o take_v away_o salvation_n fol._n 99_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v be_v the_o only_a ordinary_a mean_a whereby_o god_n have_v determine_v to_o save_v us._n m._n cartwright_n in_o m._n hooker_n lib._n 5._o of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n p._n 41_o reading_n may_v set_v forward_o but_o not_o begin_v the_o work_n of_o salvation_n say_v may_v be_v nourish_v therewith_o but_o not_o breed_v herein_o man_n attention_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o speculation_n of_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n have_v like_o efficacy_n both_o be_v of_o power_n to_o augment_v but_o neither_o to_o effect_v belief_n without_o sermon_n and_o the_o puritan_n in_o d._n whitgifts_n answer_n to_o the_o admonition_n reading_n be_v no_o feed_n how_o then_o can_v there_o be_v any_o protestant_a church_n or_o faith_n at_o all_o before_o luther_n when_o as_o we_o hear_v before_o there_o be_v then_o no_o protestant_a preacher_n preach_v scripture_n require_v preach_v and_o in_o like_a sort_n sometime_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o teach_v that_o preach_v be_v necessary_a to_o have_v faith_n the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n cap._n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la eccles_n pag._n 59_o everlasting_a justice_n the_o holy_a ghost_n eternal_a life_n can_v be_v have_v but_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o paul_n say_v the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n art_n 10_o they_o grant_v that_o none_o can_v attain_v to_o right_o say_v unless_o he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n faith_n be_v of_o hear_v and_o again_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o the_o protestant_n in_o their_o conference_n at_o marspurg_n agree_v as_o report_v hospinian_n part_n 2._o histor_n fol_z 77_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o ordinary_a course_n give_v faith_n to_o none_o unless_o preach_v or_o the_o vocal_a word_n go_v before_o but_o by_o and_o with_o the_o vocal_a word_n he_o work_v and_o make_v faith_n where_o and_o in_o who_o it_o please_v he_o rom_n 10._o caluin_n also_o 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 5_o god_n inspire_v faith_n into_o we_o by_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o gospel_n as_o paul_n admonish_v that_o say_v be_v of_o hear_v again_o we_o must_v hold_v that_o which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o out_o of_o paul_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o otherwise_o edify_v but_o by_o outward_a preach_n and_o in_o 1._o tim._n cap._n 3_o paul_n mean_v simple_o that_o which_o in_o other_o word_n he_o deliver_v rom._n 10._o because_o faith_n be_v of_o hear_v that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o say_v unless_o there_o be_v preach_v the_o like_a he_o have_v 1._o cor._n 3._o v._n 6._o heb._n 4._o v._o 12._o and_o ephes_n 4._o v._n 12._o beza_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o montbelgard_n pag._n 407_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n whereby_o faith_n be_v infuse_v be_v by_o hear_v the_o word_n rom._n 10._o and_o bucer_n in_o cap._n 10._o rom_n the_o apostle_n know_v that_o god_n can_v call_v man_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n nevertheless_o he_o absolute_o write_v how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v hyperius_n also_o upon_o the_o same_o place_n that_o be_v that_o all_o believe_v and_o call_v upon_o god_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o before_o they_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v teach_v d._n whitaker_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr scrip._n cap._n 2._o sect_n 4_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n how_o shall_v they_o believe_v without_o a_o preacher_n convince_v this_o much_o that_o preach_v be_v necessary_a to_o conceive_v assure_v of_o faith_n god_n and_o c._n 10._o sect_n 4_o the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o hear_v and_o cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o c._n 19_o pag._n 549_o this_o place_n of_o isay_n 59_o show_v that_o true_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n m._n perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n col_fw-fr 787_o i_o answer_v that_o place_n rom._n 10._o faith_n be_v of_o hear_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o justify_v faith_n so_o that_o neither_o the_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a church_n can_v ever_o have_v be_v without_o preach_v 6._o out_o of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o and_o the_o former_a chapter_n i_o thus_o make_v my_o four_o demonstration_n for_o to_o prove_v that_o luther_n be_v author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o before_o luther_n the_o protestant_a church_n have_v no_o pastor_n she_o be_v not_o then_o at_o all_o but_o then_o she_o have_v no_o pastor_n at_o all_o therefore_o than_o she_o be_v not_o at_o all_o and_o by_o he_o she_o come_v to_o have_v both_o protestant_a pastor_n and_o sheep_n therefore_o by_o he_o she_o have_v her_o beginning_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a by_o those_o confession_n of_o protestant_n which_o we_o have_v rehearse_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o the_o minor_a by_o those_o that_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o former_a that_o the_o protestant_n church_n and_o religion_n before_o luther_n
28._o fol._n 396_o if_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v worship_v christ_n must_v be_v deny_v and_o de_fw-fr missa_fw-la privata_fw-la tom_n 7._o fol._n 475_o whosoever_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n and_o obey_v he_o can_v be_v save_v caluin_n against_o seruer_n pag._n 607_o be_v it_o not_o a_o profanation_n of_o the_o sacred_a unity_n to_o profess_v one_o god_n and_o faith_n with_o a_o impious_a and_o profane_a company_n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la versip_n pag._n 362_o how_o wicked_a and_o soul_n treachery_n be_v it_o to_o abide_v in_o that_o sacrilegious_a company_n of_o papist_n and_o d._n whitaker_n ad_fw-la rat._n 3._o campiani_n none_o abide_v with_o the_o lamb_n in_o the_o mountain_n who_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o antichrist_n and_o caluin_n in_o confutat_fw-la hollandi_n &_o lib._n de_fw-fr vitandis_fw-la superstitionibus_fw-la bring_v many_o proof_n to_o show_v that_o the_o faithful_a may_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o false_a church_n and_o thereto_o cit_v the_o letter_n of_o melancthon_n bucer_n peter_n martyr_n and_o those_o of_o zurich_n and_o the_o same_o be_v common_o teach_v of_o protestant_n how_o then_o do_v not_o those_o protestant_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o be_v they_o save_v who_o in_o time_n past_o communicate_v with_o papist_n how_o be_v they_o save_v unless_o god_n be_v a_o acceptour_n of_o person_n and_o time_n that_o he_o will_v cut_v of_o some_o from_o his_o body_n and_o from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n who_o communicate_v with_o antichrist_n and_o not_o other_o at_o these_o and_o not_o in_o former_a time_n again_o protestant_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o profess_v her_o faith_n as_o beside_o the_o testimony_n before_o repeat_v the_o preface_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n say_v they_o that_o be_v demand_v must_v needs_o tell_v the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n art_n 2_o they_o teach_v that_o they_o must_v undoubted_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o confess_v they_o with_o the_o mouth_n luther_n in_o 1._o petri_n cap._n 2._o tom_n 5._o fol._n 464_o if_o any_o now_o as_o the_o emperor_n or_o other_o prince_n shall_v ask_v i_o my_o faith_n i_o must_v plain_o confess_v it_o to_o he_o and_o de_fw-fr scru._n arbit_n tom_fw-mi 2._o fol_z 432_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n must_v always_o be_v preach_v open_o and_o never_o keep_v secret_a or_o crooked_a and_o turn_v awry_o d._n feild_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr eccl._n cap._n 10_o for_o see_v the_o church_n be_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v unless_o he_o make_v confession_n unto_o salvation_n for_o faith_n hide_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o conceal_v do_v not_o suffice_v it_o can_v be_v but_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n must_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n make_v themselves_o know_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o syntagme_n of_o confession_n when_o every_o one_o ought_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n give_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o hope_n how_o much_o more_o the_o church_n and_o d._n whitaker_n cont._n 4._o quest_n 6._o cap._n 2._o pag_n 696_o true_a say_v can_n no_o more_o be_v separate_v from_o confession_n with_o the_o mouth_n than_o fire_n from_o beat_v or_o the_o sun_n from_o its_o brightness_n and_o beam_n what_o faith_n then_o have_v those_o protestant_n which_o as_o be_v say_v dare_v not_o profess_v their_o mind_n and_o cont._n 2._o qoest_fw-mi 3._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 472_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a to_o dissemble_v true_a religion_n or_o make_v show_v of_o false_a nor_o to_o conceal_v what_o they_o think_v of_o religion_n if_o they_o be_v examine_v of_o they_o who_o have_v authority_n to_o ask_v they_o of_o their_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o in_o so_o many_o age_n in_o no_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n no_o catholic_a magistrate_n shall_v ask_v any_o protestant_n of_o his_o faith_n especial_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o luther_n write_v in_o psalm_n 22._o tom_n 3._o fol._n 344._o that_o papist_n do_v so_o examine_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o her_o bone_n may_v be_v count_v that_o be_v none_o of_o they_o can_v by_o hide_v wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v any_o hide_a bone_n of_o christ_n all_o be_v bewray_v and_o count_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v either_o by_o the_o espial_n of_o secret_a confession_n or_o by_o the_o torture_n or_o examiner_n which_o show_v that_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o true_a protestant_n heretofore_o they_o will_v have_v be_v discover_v 11._o final_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o these_o strait_n that_o sometime_o they_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n church_n which_o they_o imagine_v be_v heretofore_o in_o popery_n do_v consist_v of_o those_o who_o be_v papist_n both_o in_o opinion_n and_o profession_n this_o caluin_n intimate_v in_o the_o word_n before_o cite_v when_o he_o say_v that_o his_o church_n be_v corrupt_v with_o pestilent_a doctrine_n and_o luther_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la privata_fw-la tom_n 7._o fol._n 231._o saying_n the_o very_a elect_a be_v seduce_v in_o that_o great_a darkness_n and_o in_o cap._n 9_o isaiae_n tom_n 4._o fol._n 95_o behold_v say_v he_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o church_n under_o popery_n do_v not_o they_o all_o who_o true_o feel_v the_o burden_n of_o sin_n imagine_v that_o they_o shall_v by_o good_a work_n satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n which_o thing_n alone_o will_v suffice_v to_o blot_v they_o out_o of_o the_o role_n of_o protestant_n d._n white_a in_o defence_n of_o his_o way_n cap._n 36._o pag._n 350._o say_v those_o imaginary_a protestant_n be_v corrupt_v some_o more_o some_o less_o with_o those_o error_n which_o say_v he_o now_o we_o fly_v and_o cap._n 40._o pag._n 394._o grant_v that_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o damnable_a heresy_n d._n whitaker_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la cap._n 8._o sect_n ult._n say_v they_o be_v beset_v with_o most_o thick_a darkness_n napp●r_n in_o cap._n 12._o apocal._n pag._n 195._o that_o their_o visible_a church_n in_o time_n past_a whole_o embrace_v the_o error_n of_o merit_n and_o indulgence_n etc._n etc._n and_o morgerster●●_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 41_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o time_n past_a to_o be_v forgive_v the_o godly_a that_o they_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n popery_n to_o be_v the_o church_n saint_n to_o be_v pray_v unto_o mass_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n supper_n be_v these_o man_n think_v you_o in_o their_o wit_n who_o call_v they_o godly_a and_o say_v they_o must_v be_v pardon_v who_o believe_v antichrist_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n antichrists_n synagogue_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o horrible_a idolatry_n such_o as_o they_o account_v mass_n &_o prayer_n to_o saint_n to_o be_v service_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o also_o they_o mean_v when_o they_o challenge_v the_o simple_a &_o ignorant_a papist_n for_o they_o or_o confess_v the_o vulgar_a roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o as_o other_o of_o they_o speak_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n but_o deny_v popery_n the_o popish_a or_o roman_a popish_a church_n for_o they_o imagine_v that_o the_o simple_a catholic_a people_n neither_o do_v now_o nor_o in_o former_a time_n do_v believe_v those_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o themselves_o deny_v but_o this_o they_o feign_v of_o the_o simple_a catholic_a people_n and_o can_v prove_v it_o beside_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a ●o_o simple_a as_o do_v not_o virtual_o believe_v all_o point_n of_o catholic_a faith_n which_o protestant_n deny_v since_o he_o actual_o profess_v to_o believe_v whatsoever_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o at_o all_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v justification_n by_o good_a work_n which_o point_n alone_o will_v suffice_v to_o make_v they_o not_o protestant_n beside_o caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 8._o say_v that_o we_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v no_o christian_n who_o do_v not_o undoubted_o agree_v to_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o well_o affirmative_a as_o negative_a and_o the_o same_o say_v d._n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 8._o pag._n 519._o d._n morton_n part_n 1._o apol._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 9_o and_o d._n willet_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o synopsis_n yea_o as_o before_o we_o rehearse_v 2._o cap_n 2._o they_o confess_v that_o before_o luther_n revolt_n all_o from_o head_n to_o foot_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o puddle_n of_o popery_n that_o none_o dream_v of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o protestancy_n wherefore_o schusselburg_n tom_n 8._o catal._n haeret._n pag._n 440._o seem_v to_o say_v that_o before_o luther_n arise_v popery_n be_v the_o true_a church_n like_a as_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v before_o the_o come_n
be_v certain_a that_o d._n martin_n luther_n be_v fall_v into_o so_o foul_a and_o impious_a error_n we_o first_o of_o all_o will_v not_o only_o yield_v he_o up_o to_o the_o law_n but_o also_o will_v punish_v he_o and_o cast_v he_o out_o and_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n 10._o ibid._n fol._n 206._o most_o holy_a faoher_n we_o devout_a and_o obedient_a child_n of_o your_o holiness_n do_v most_o humble_o &_o earnest_o beseech_v etc._n etc._n and_o below_o neither_o will_v we_o ever_o seem_v such_o as_o will_v pertinacious_o hold_v any_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n ready_a at_o all_o time_n to_o obey_v you_o and_o the_o holy_a church_n behest_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o letter_n to_o frederick_n the_o elector_n fol._n 227._o above_o all_o thing_n we_o exceed_o like_a that_o your_o highness_n simple_o and_o pure_o honour_v the_o holy_a church_n and_o the_o pope_n neither_o will_v we_o ever_o be_v of_o any_o other_o mind_n we_o prefer_v nothing_o before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o not_o only_o the_o university_n but_o the_o people_n of_o wittenberg_n be_v also_o catholik_o as_o luther_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n to_o frederick_n elector_n fol._n 330._o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o reformation_n of_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n in_o this_o church_n of_o wittenberg_n begin_v by_o i_o 3._o frederick_n also_o the_o elector_n catholke_n fredrick_n elector_n first_o catholke_n and_o luther_n chief_a patron_n be_v a_o papist_n for_o thus_o himself_o write_v to_o cardinal_n raphael_n tom_fw-mi 1._o lutheri_fw-la fol._n 228._o your_o kindness_n god_n willing_a shall_v never_o see_v that_o i_o have_v any_o other_o mind_n or_o will_v then_o to_o show_v myself_o obedient_a and_o officious_a unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o his_o counsellor_n tom_n 2._o fol._n 116._o profess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o obedient_a son_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o likewise_o tom_n 1._o fol._n 101._o frederick_n the_o elector_n above_o all_o love_v the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a truth_n beside_o as_o luther_n write_v tom_n 7._o sermone_fw-la de_fw-la simulacris_fw-la he_o put_v silver_n statue_n in_o the_o church_n think_v thereby_o to_o merit_v at_o god_n hand_n and_o tom_n 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr abroganda_fw-la missa_fw-la fol._n 268._o he_o deceive_v by_o papist_n do_v great_o increase_v and_o adorn_v the_o house_n of_o all_o saint_n he_o found_v also_o a_o college_n of_o canon_n where_o he_o keep_v mass_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n 1524._o as_o chytreus_n testify_v lib._n 11._o histor_n saxon._n and_o luther_n intimate_v in_o formula_fw-la missae_fw-la tom_n 2._o fol_z 387._o saying_n be_v not_o you_o or_o any_o other_o afraid_a that_o in_o our_o wittenberg_n that_o sacrilegious_a tophee_n remain_v as_o yet_o which_o be_v the_o wicked_a and_o lose_v money_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o saxony_n i_o mean_v the_o temple_n of_o all_o saint_n 4._o pomeranus_n pomeranus_n bugenlage_n the_o pomeran_n and_o first_o protestant_n of_o wittembrge_n have_v be_v before_o a_o papist_n for_o as_o scultet_n concione_fw-la saecul_fw-la pag_n 15._o report_v when_o he_o first_o read_v luther_n book_n de_fw-la captiu_fw-la he_o say_v since_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sun_n never_o behold_v a_o great_a heretic_n than_o luther_n of_o osiander_n osiander_n osiander_n thus_o writ_v danaeus_n respon_n ad_fw-la leonicum_n pag._n 1518._o he_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a franciscan_a erier_n his_o proper_a name_n be_v hosen_n that_o be_v hose_n or_o hosier_n but_o of_o hosier_n he_o will_v be_v call_v hosion_n that_o be_v a_o holy_a man_n 5._o the_o same_o also_o we_o manifest_v of_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o sacramentarye_n among_o who_o zuinglius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la write_v thus_o of_o himself_o epist_n ad_fw-la fratres_n tom_n 1._o fol._n 341._o i_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o in_o time_n past_a i_o receive_v joust_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o than_o i_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o use_v the_o pope_n liberality_n when_o i_o think_v it_o a_o pious_a and_o godly_a matter_n to_o defend_v to_o my_o strength_n his_o religion_n and_o faith_n and_o luther_n lib._n de_fw-la coena_fw-la write_v that_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v become_v seven_o time_n worse_o than_o when_o he_o maintain_v popish_a religion_n likewise_o oecolampadius_n oecolampadius_n oecolampadius_n zuinglius_fw-la he_o chief_a partner_n thus_o witness_v of_o himself_o respon_n poster_n ad_fw-la porkey_n merum_fw-la pag._n 108._o i_o enter_v into_o a_o monastery_n be_v of_o a_o good_a age_n and_o a_o man_n &_o doctor_n and_o with_o mature_a advice_n to_o which_o hospin_n add_v part_n 2._o hist_o fol._n 35._o he_o enter_v two_o yeure_n before_o into_o the_o monastery_n of_o our_o saviour_n near_o to_o auspurge_n and_o there_o become_v a_o monk_n fear_v some_o danger_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n by_o luther_n writing_n pelicanus_n pelicanus_n and_o ibidem_fw-la fol._n 42._o he_o say_v that_o pelican_n be_v a_o franciscan_a and_o fol._n 213._o that_o bucer_n bucer_n bucer_n become_v a_o dominican_n in_o his_o childhood_n of_o who_o also_o and_o peter_n martyr_n d._n andrew_n respon_n ad_fw-la apol_n bellar._n say_v they_o leave_v their_o monkish_a life_n 6._o of_o caluin_n caluin_n caluin_n thus_o testify_v himself_o lib_n de_fw-fr scandalis_fw-la pag._n 100_o under_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n i_o be_v free_a to_o marry_v since_o god_n deliver_v i_o from_o thence_o etc._n etc._n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n pag._n 122._o if_o i_o will_v have_v provide_v for_o my_o matter_n i_o shall_v never_o have_v leave_v your_o faction_n in_o his_o testament_n god_n deliver_v we_o from_o the_o deep_a darkness_n of_o idolatry_n wherein_o i_o be_v drown_v and_o pareus_n lib._n 2._o the_o amiss_o great_a cap._n 1._o whence_o be_v luther_n and_o caluin_n but_o of_o papist_n the_o same_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o life_n write_v by_o beza_n where_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v a_o benefice_n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o noyon_n and_o the_o cure_n of_o a_o parish_n thereby_o and_o that_o he_o be_v first_o put_v in_o mind_n of_o protestancy_n by_o robert_n olivetan_n that_o peter_n martyr_n martyr_n peter_n martyr_n be_v long_a time_n both_o catholic_a and_o canon_n regular_a simler_n testify_v in_o his_o life_n which_o also_o he_o affirm_v of_o zanchius_n zanchius_n zanchius_n say_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o 18._o companion_n that_o forsake_v popery_n follow_v peter_n martyr_n who_o also_o in_o his_o preface_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v that_o he_o be_v 35._o year_n of_o age_n when_o he_o leave_v babylon_n 7._o concern_v the_o lutheran_n in_o general_a general_n lutheran_n in_o general_n thus_o write_v luther_n epist_n ad_fw-la erford_n fol._n 500_o in_o which_o error_n of_o antichrist_n we_o be_v all_o stifle_v enthrall_v wlth_n a_o grievous_a and_o miserable_a slavery_n do_v serve_v the_o god_n and_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n serve_v the_o same_o in_o sin_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n and_o tom_n 4._o in_o cap._n 43._o isaiae_n fol._n 179._o we_o be_v account_v heretic_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o who_o have_v divide_v ourselves_o from_o that_o church_n wherein_o we_o be_v baptize_v and_o instruct_v in_o cap._n 4._o galat._n tom_n 5._o fol._n 377._o we_o old_a man_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o that_o popish_a faith_n and_o have_v so_o swallow_v it_o that_o it_o have_v enter_v the_o most_o inward_a sinew_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o therefore_o we_o forget_v it_o with_o no_o less_o pain_n than_o we_o learn_v the_o true_a say_v you_o hear_v how_o hardly_o the_o very_a first_o protestant_n can_v become_v protestant_n &_o leave_v to_o be_v papist_n and_o in_o cap._n 11._o genes_n tom_fw-mi 6._o fol._n 129._o he_o thus_o boast_v we_o be_v holy_a apostate_n for_o we_o have_v fall_v from_o antichrist_n and_o the_o church_n of_o satan_n melancthon_n likewise_o in_o cap._n 7._o math._n tom_n 1._o fol._n 406._o we_o be_v heretofore_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n tom._n 2._o cont_n suenefeld_n pag._n 200._o we_o depart_v from_o the_o pope_n church_n tom._n 3._o ad_fw-la art_n bavar_n fol._n 364._o there_o be_v necessary_a cause_n that_o we_o shall_v forsake_v the_o papist_n and_o tom_n 4._o in_o act._n wormat_n pag._n 403._o we_o have_v just_a cause_n of_o departure_n from_o the_o popish_a congregation_n and_o with_o good_a conscience_n we_o forsake_v the_o consent_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n james_n andrew_n cont_n hosium_n pag._n 332._o the_o more_o age_a do_v grateful_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o come_v from_o you_o that_o be_v lest_o you_o and_o your_o doctrine_n and_o schuffelburg_n in_o epist_n dedicat_fw-la tom_fw-mi 8._o catal._n haeret_fw-la have_v these_o word_n it_o be_v behooveful_a to_o have_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o cause_n whereon_o our_o conscience_n may_v in_o the_o storm_n of_o tentation_n rely_v why_o in_o this_o our_o age_n ancestor_n
will_v and_o ought_v to_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n behold_v how_o their_o conscience_n be_v toss_v as_o with_o a_o storm_n for_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n lobechius_n also_o disput_fw-la 10._o pag._n 224._o say_v our_o ancestor_n do_v well_o that_o they_o go_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a babylon_n general_n sacramentarye_n in_o general_n 8._o of_o sacramentarye_n also_o in_o general_a thus_o write_v zuinglius_fw-la in_o praefat._n lib._n de_fw-la ver_fw-la &_o tal_o relig_n fol._n 159._o we_o be_v alas_o long_a time_n so_o besiege_v with_o the_o juggling_n of_o man_n and_o caluin_n in_o confess_v fidel_n pag._n 111._o we_o dissemble_v not_o that_o we_o also_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o who_o honour_n mass_n until_o the_o abuse_n of_o mass_n be_v discover_v and_o 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 6._o §_o 6._o we_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n cap._n 15._o §_o 16._o we_o be_v christen_v in_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n respon_n ad_fw-la versipel_n pag._n 360._o of_o our_o own_o accord_n we_o go_v from_o the_o rabble_n of_o popery_n resp_n ad_fw-la sadoler_n pag._n 122_o that_o i_o may_v not_o make_v any_o long_a role_n this_o i_o say_v there_o be_v none_o of_o those_o who_o be_v beginner_n of_o this_o cause_n but_o may_v have_v be_v in_o better_a estate_n and_o condition_n among_o you_o then_o that_o he_o need_v therefore_o to_o think_v of_o any_o new_a k●nd_n of_o life_n peter_n martyr_n in_o locis_fw-la col_fw-fr 1459._o propose_v this_o question_n whether_o the_o ghospeller_n be_v schismatic_n because_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o papist_n and_o col_fw-fr 1465._o conclude_v thus_o see_v there_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o just_a cause_n of_o our_o departure_n from_o popery_n our_o separation_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o laudable_a &_o not_o to_o be_v dislike_v zanchius_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 18._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o from_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o we_o willing_o confess_v bullenger_n tom_n 1._o decad_n 5._o serm_n 2._o fol._n 282._o we_o willing_o confess_v that_o we_o go_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la p._n 620._o we_o be_v term_v apostate_n of_o the_o romanist_n as_o many_o have_v forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v as_o we_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v rather_o glory_v theereof_o plessie_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap_n 11._o pag._n 361._o write_v that_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n bucer_n capito_n martyr_n and_o other_o out_o of_o who_o school_n say_v he_o the_o minister_n who_o gather_v the_o church_n from_o antichrist_n do_v come_v be_v priest_n curate_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n &c_n &c_n to_o who_o beza_n lib._n de_fw-la notis_n pag._n 8._o adjoin_v pelican_n and_o haller_n and_o other_o more_o d._n whitaker_n lib._n 9_o cont_n duraeum_n say_v luther_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o your_o order_n and_o such_o be_v zuinglius_fw-la bucer_n oecolampadious_a and_o other_o without_o number_n m._n perkins_n in_o cap._n 4._o galat._n v._n 26_o all_o the_o first_o renewer_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v either_o priest_n or_o teacher_n of_o school_n paraeus_n lib._n cit_fw-la be_v we_o worthy_a of_o blame_n or_o heretic_n because_o we_o leave_v the_o pope_n church_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n the_o justicatione_n our_o ancestor_n 97._o year_n ago_o have_v necessary_a cause_n for_o to_o forsake_v popery_n and_o scultet_n in_o concione_fw-la saeculari_fw-la pag._n 4._o this_o be_v the_o hundred_o year_n since_o god_n pluck_v our_o ancestor_n out_o of_o popish_a darkness_n final_o polanus_fw-la in_fw-la praefat_fw-la thes_n de_fw-fr eccles_n we_o have_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o false_a catholic_a synagogue_n 9_o the_o same_o also_o be_v manifest_a of_o the_o english_a protestant_n by_o their_o own_o word_n for_o thus_o they_o speak_v in_o their_o apology_n part_n 5._o cap._n 12._o divis_fw-la 1._o protestant_n english_a protestant_n it_o be_v true_a we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o item_n true_a it_o be_v we_o be_v bring_v up_o with_o these_o man_n in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o lack_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o part_n 6._o cap._n 20._o divis_fw-la 2._o as_o for_o we_o true_o we_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n causabon_n also_o epist_n ad_fw-la card._n peron_n cap._n 16._o the_o king_n confess_v that_o his_o church_n have_v forsake_v no_o few_o point_n of_o that_o faith_n and_o discipline_n which_o at_o this_o day_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v profess_v and_o pag._n 17._o the_o english_a have_v go_v from_o that_o church_n m._n hooker_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr polit._n eccles_n pag._n 181._o we_o be_v a_o part_n of_o they_o m._n powel_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap_n 21._o we_o confess_v we_o have_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o synagogue_n m._n perkins_n in_o cap._n 5._o galat._n vers_fw-la 21._o we_o have_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n d._n whitaker_n count_v 2._o quest_n 6._o cap._n 3._o say_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v just_o lest_o of_o us._n and_o d._n morton_n part_n 2._o apol._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 10._o the_o former_a book_n tell_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o you_o in_o like_a manner_n those_o of_o zurich_n in_o sleidan_n lib._n 4._o histor_n say_v after_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v cast_v of_o that_o burden_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v put_v upon_o we_o idiot_n and_o add_v withal_o that_o before_o they_o have_v hear_v nothing_o of_o protestancy_n suitzer_n suitzer_n and_o the_o suitzer_n in_o their_o confess_n cap._n 17._o confess_v that_o their_o church_n have_v part_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o scot_n in_o their_o confess_n write_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v late_o bear_v among_o they_o polonian_n polonian_n and_o the_o polonian_n in_o their_o consent_n that_o god_n have_v deliver_v their_o church_n out_o of_o the_o gross_a darkness_n of_o popery_n 10._o furthermore_o of_o the_o whole_a protestant_n church_n or_o of_o protestant_n in_o general_a church_n the_o whole_a protest_v church_n thus_o they_o write_v lobechius_n disp_n 12._o pag._n 254._o our_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a orthodoxal_a church_n go_v out_o of_o roman_a babylon_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n speak_v daneus_fw-la de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap._n 17._o pareus_n proaem_n l._n de_fw-fr justificat_fw-la the_o evangelicall_a church_n be_v compel_v above_o 96._o year_n ago_o to_o make_v a_o division_n from_o the_o popish_a church_n the_o like_a he_o have_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o &_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 8._o schusselburg_n tom_n 8._o catal_a pag._n 727._o our_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a polanus_fw-la part_n 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la bezam_n the_o reform_a church_n do_v well_o that_o they_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o popish_a church_n aretius_n in_o loc_n part_n 2._o fol._n 10._o our_o reform_a church_n depart_v from_o popery_n d._n andrew_n respon_n ad_fw-la apoll._n bellarm._n cap._n 14._o boast_v that_o almost_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a babylon_n and_o d._n whitaker_n count_v 2._o quest_n 3._o cap._n 3._o say_v england_n germany_n scotland_n long_o ago_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o english_a apology_n glori_v in_o this_o sort_n part_n 1._o cap._n 1._o divis_fw-la 3._o for_o they_o be_v not_o all_o make_v at_o this_o day_n so_o many_o free_a city_n so_o many_o king_n so_o many_o prince_n which_o have_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n daneus_fw-la cont_n 4._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 12._o all_o scotland_n england_n saxony_n denmark_n a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n all_o suitzerland_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o grison_n have_v fall_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n d._n sutlive_v lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 2._o p._n 251._o our_o church_n have_v shake_v off_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v return_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o pag._n 254._o england_n scotland_n ireland_n denmark_n norwey_n saxony_n pomerania_n &_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o germany_n france_n flanders_n poland_n have_v fall_v from_o the_o pope_n moalin_n lib._n de_fw-la fug_n arnoldi_n cap._n 2._o our_o church_n be_v call_v reform_v because_o they_o be_v christian_a church_n purge_v from_o popery_n d._n rainolds_n among_o his_o conclusion_n put_v this_o for_o the_o sixth_o that_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o england_n scotland_n france_n germany_n and_o other_o kingdom_n and_o common_a wealth_n have_v just_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a and_o add_v with_o all_o that_o all_o reform_a church_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n
castro_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o forname_v person_n do_v come_v forth_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o mean_v that_o be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o protestant_a lurk_v hole_n or_o to_o have_v be_v secret_a protestant_n before_o luther_n appear_v see_v he_o only_o say_v that_o they_o come_v forth_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o say_v luther_n come_v forth_o to_o wit_n forth_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o of_o catholics_n become_v heretic_n 3._o five_o i_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n wherein_o they_o teach_v that_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o adjoine_v himself_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n if_o so_o he_o can_v convenient_o for_o so_o teach_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o low_a country_n art_n 28._o the_o french_a art_n 26._o melancthon_n in_o cap._n 8._o matth._n caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 1._o d_o whitaker_n cont._n 2._o quest_n 3_o cap._n 2_o and_o other_o common_o but_o these_o former_a protestant_n if_o any_o such_o have_v be_v may_v convenient_o have_v join_v themselves_o to_o luther_n company_n after_o that_o they_o see_v he_o to_o preach_v secure_o and_o out_o of_o danger_n see_v therefore_o no_o such_o come_v to_o he_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o at_o all_o final_o this_o be_v manifest_a otherwise_o for_o suppose_v that_o before_o luther_n they_o lay_v so_o close_o as_o that_o they_o worship_v god_n only_o in_o hart_n and_o soul_n yet_o when_o they_o see_v protestancy_n to_o be_v preach_v public_o and_o secure_o and_o that_o they_o may_v live_v open_o and_o among_o man_n who_o will_v imagine_v that_o they_o will_v prefer_v darkness_n before_o light_n and_o lurk_a hole_n before_o town_n and_o city_n and_o always_o keep_v in_o desert_n certaid_o such_o kind_n of_o fellow_n shall_v be_v rather_o bat_n or_o owl_n than_o man_n beside_o be_v just_a man_n forsooth_o why_o do_v they_o not_o afford_v god_n external_a worship_n when_o they_o may_v secure_o do_v it_o why_o do_v they_o not_o according_a to_o christ_n commandment_n celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n by_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 4._o out_o of_o these_o i_o compose_v the_o seven_o demonstration_n if_o after_o that_o luther_n secure_o preach_v protestancy_n never_o any_o ancient_a protestant_a come_v forth_o and_o adjoin_v himself_o to_o his_o company_n there_o be_v no_o protestant_n before_o but_o no_o such_o ever_o come_v forth_o ergo._n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o protestant_n before_o luther_n undoubted_o he_o be_v the_o beginner_n of_o that_o company_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v new_a chap._n xiii_o the_o eight_o demonstration_n with_o which_o we_o will_v prove_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o beginner_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n we_o will_v frame_v out_o of_o protestant_n confession_n of_o the_o novelty_n thereof_o first_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n almost_o of_o all_o man_n it_o be_v new_a and_o that_o it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a judgement_n now_o in_o almost_o all_o man_n judgement_n to_o wipe_v away_o from_o it_o the_o spot_n of_o novelty_n thus_o illyricus_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o catalogue_n when_o doctor_n raise_v of_o god_n preach_v the_o protestant_n gospel_n and_o do_v inveigh_v against_o contrary_a error_n they_o seem_v in_o the_o judgement_n almost_o of_o all_o man_n to_o bring_v a_o new_a doctrine_n unheard_a of_o before_o and_o to_o impugn_v the_o old_a again_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a and_o almost_o impossible_a to_o remove_v the_o hateful_a mark_n of_o novelty_n from_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n impossible_a almost_o impossible_a to_o which_o d._n fulke_o lib._n the_o success_n pag._n 454._o add_v that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v altogether_o new_a to_o most_o nation_n 2._o second_o in_o equivalent_a word_n they_o oftentimes_o call_v their_o religion_n new_a or_o begin_v of_o new_a for_o as_o we_o shall_v straight_o rehearse_v they_o term_v it_o in_o the_o blade_n renascent_n reviue_a bear_v a_o new_a renew_v repair_v restore_v raise_v again_o resuscitate_v and_o what_o can_v be_v mean_v by_o these_o term_n but_o a_o religion_n either_o new_a or_o new_o erect_v such_o as_o christ_n religion_n be_v not_o for_o neither_o be_v it_o new_a in_o itself_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v begin_v or_o raise_v anew_o because_o it_o can_v never_o fall_v luther_n in_o cap._n 22._o genes_n tom_fw-mi fol._n 208._o write_v thus_o anew_o bear_v anew_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v a_o new_a monetarius_fw-la &_o c_o in_o cap._n 31._o fol._n 434_o nine_o assembly_n have_v be_v hold_v since_o the_o gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v bear_v a_o new_a in_o cap._n 32._o fol._n 458_o after_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v bear_v again_o in_o cap._n 48._o fol._n 643._o again_o bear_v again_o at_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n rise_v again_o in_o cap._n 49._o fol._n 662._o they_o desire_v to_o extinguish_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n rise_v again_o in_o cap._n fol._n 342._o i_o remember_v that_o before_o these_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v a_o new_a and_o in_o the_o praefat._n deuter._n tom_n 3._o jenen_fw-ge fol._n 75._o the_o rise_n again_o or_o rather_o spring_v gospel_n again_o rise_v again_o thus_o speak_v luther_n melancthon_n apol._n pro_fw-la luthero_n tom_n 2._o lutheri_fw-la fol._n 194._o you_o oppose_v against_o the_o rise_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o respon_n ad_fw-la clerum_fw-la colon._n tom_n 2._o pag._n 97._o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n rise_v again_o and_o in_o cap._n 7_o matth._n tom_n 1._o renew_a renew_a fol_z 398_o he_o term_v it_o renew_v doctrine_n carion_n in_o chron._n pag._n 706._o call_v their_o church_n the_o renascent_n church_n justus_n jonas_n epist_n dedicat_fw-la lib._n lutheri_fw-la de_fw-fr judaeis_n tom_fw-mi 7._o fol._n 166._o god_n will_v that_o in_o our_o time_n the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v bear_v again_o under_o the_o house_n of_o saxony_n reviue_v reviue_v besoldus_n in_o his_o preface_n of_o the_o 4._o part_n of_o luther_n commentary_n upon_o genes_n have_v these_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n bear_v anew_o o_o siander_n in_o his_o manual_a english_v pag._n 62_o our_o doctrine_n be_v renew_v and_o his_o son_n lucas_n epist_n euchar_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sponge_n in_o daneus_n pag._n 13._o green_a christianity_n green_a call_v it_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n reviue_v or_o quicken_a again_o kemnice_n in_o locis_fw-la part_n 2._o p._n 106._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o among_o the_o sacramentarye_n zuinglius_fw-la speak_v thus_o in_o supplicat_fw-la ad_fw-la suithenses_fw-la fol_z 121_o christianity_n be_v green_a christianity_n rise_v again_o and_o in_o eccles_n fol._n 41._o new_o bear_v truth_n which_o phrase_n he_o repeat_v disput_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 607._o gesnerus_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la say_v of_o luther_n the_o new_a bear_v church_n do_v owe_v much_o unto_o he_o gospel_n recall_v gospel_n muscle_n epist_n dedicat_fw-la locorum_fw-la i_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o new_a rise_a evangelicall_a truth_n bucer_n in_o retract_v pag._n 642._o use_v these_o word_n gospel_n begin_v of_o the_o new_a bear_v gospel_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o recall_v gospel_n beza_n in_o cap_n 3._o rom._n v._n 20._o they_o by_o who_o ministry_n god_n in_o our_o age_n have_v recall_v to_o light_v christ_n gospel_n almost_o bury_v gualther_n praefat._n in_o rom._n how_o much_o harm_n the_o anabaptist_n do_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o new_a bear_v gospel_n again_o quicken_a again_o martyr_n in_o locis_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o pag._n 228._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o and_o in_o epist_n dedicat_fw-la comment_n ad_fw-la rom._n the_o gospel_n quicken_a again_o hospin_n epist_n dedicat_fw-la 1._o part_n histor_n the_o evangelicall_a truth_n bear_v again_o sohinus_fw-la in_o methodo_fw-la theol._n pag._n 215._o among_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n bear_v again_o and_o caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 7._o §_o 24._o the_o doctrsne_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o lib._n the_o scan_v pag._n 76._o &_o 94._o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o admonit_fw-la 2._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la pag._n 784._o the_o gospel_n be_v bear_v again_o and_o count_v scruetum_fw-la pag._n 592_o of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o speak_v ordinary_o sadel_n respo_n ad_fw-la arthurum_fw-la cap._n 7._o the_o church_n bear_v again_o paraeus_n in_o miscellan_n ursini_n pag._n 26._o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o danaeus_n respon_n ad_fw-la solnec_fw-la pag._n 1565_o in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n bear_v again_o plessic_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 11_o christ_n bear_v again_o cambden_n in_o apparatu_fw-la annalium_fw-la the_o rise_a
part_n 2._o histor_n fol._n 232_o he_o first_o in_o our_o age_n bring_v into_o the_o world_n the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n after_o it_o have_v be_v extinguish_v thus_o the_o lutheran_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o sacramentarye_n zuinglius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la luther_n tom_n 2._o fol._n 380._o thus_o speak_v luther_n thou_o first_o come_v into_o the_o field_n ibidem_fw-la in_o exeges_fw-la fol._n 335._o we_o willing_o acknowledge_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a defender_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o diomedes_n who_o dare_v set_v upon_o the_o roman_a venus_n the_o jonathas_n who_o dare_v alone_o assail_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o palestin_o bucer_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la pag._n 675._o call_v luther_n our_o first_o apostle_n of_o the_o pure_a gospel_n and_o 673._o say_v luther_n first_o in_o our_o age_n do_v impugn_v superstition_n caluin_n write_v that_o he_o begin_v to_o take_v the_o cause_n in_o hand_n and_o first_o show_v the_o way_n way_n first_o show_v the_o way_n danaeus_n lib._n de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la cap._n 15_o luther_n first_o give_v other_o occasion_n to_o think_v right_o of_o man_n justification_n before_o god_n lavather_n de_fw-fr distid_v euchar._n anno_fw-la 1546._o luther_n first_o in_o our_o age_n do_v by_o diverse_a writing_n open_o inveigh_v against_o popish_a error_n author_n orthodoxi_fw-la consensus_fw-la in_o praefat._n apol_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v the_o first_o who_o begin_v to_o reprehend_v inveterate_a error_n again_o the_o first_o teacher_n of_o germany_n luther_n melancthon_n etc._n etc._n among_o english_a protestant_n m._n jewel_n in_o defence_n apol._n part_n 1._o cap._n 7._o divis_fw-la 3_o thus_o i_o say_v in_o this_o late_a age_n after_o your_o so_o long_a darkness_n luther_n be_v the_o first_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n m._n fox_n in_o his_o act_n pag._n 402_o luther_n open_v the_o vein_n long_o before_o hide_v m._n wotton_n in_o his_o examination_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o who_o in_o that_o time_n do_v publish_v christ_n especial_o in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v a_o honour_n for_o luther_n to_o have_v be_v a_o son_n without_o a_o father_n a_o scholar_n without_o a_o master_n master_n scholar_n without_o a_o master_n you_o see_v how_o plain_o they_o say_v that_o luther_n first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n first_o bring_v in_o the_o gospel_n first_o show_v the_o way_n first_o publish_v christ_n discover_v the_o first_o sparkle_n first_o lay_v open_v the_o justice_n of_o faith_n have_v no_o orthodoxal_a predecessor_n be_v a_o son_n without_o a_o father_n and_o a_o scholar_n without_o a_o master_n and_o that_o in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n which_o the_o soul_n hinge_n and_o sum_n of_o protestancy_n 2._o second_o without_o luther_n help_n no_o man_n have_v know_v a_o jot_n of_o protestancy_n luther_n count_v regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la tom_n 2._o fol._n 497_o unless_o we_o have_v open_v the_o way_n they_o be_v like_a to_o have_v understand_v nothing_o at_o all_o either_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n all_o nothing_o at_o all_o in_o cap._n 15._o 1._o loc_fw-la tom_fw-mi 5._o fol._n 134_o the_o gospel_n be_v by_o our_o labour_n and_o diligence_n bring_v into_o light_n and_o they_o first_o learn_v it_o of_o we_o without_o our_o pain_n they_o can_v never_o have_v learn_v one_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o fol._n 141_o god_n have_v call_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n word_n not_o one_o word_n that_o by_o we_o christ_n may_v be_v manifest_v &_o know_v to_o the_o world_n this_o praise_n they_o can_v take_v from_o we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o first_o &_o carry_v away_o the_o prize_n of_o bring_v the_o gospel_n into_o light_n of_o which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v know_v one_o jot_n unless_o by_o our_o pain_n and_o study_v it_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o and_o ibidem_fw-la in_o cap._n 17._o matth._n he_o say_v that_o without_o he_o the_o sacramentary_n and_o other_o will_v not_o have_v know_v never_o so_o little_a of_o the_o evangelicall_a truth_n jot_n not_o one_o jot_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o exegesi_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 358._o write_v these_o word_n of_o luther_n if_o they_o have_v not_o have_v it_o of_o we_o little_a never_o so_o little_a doubtless_o they_o will_v have_v know_v nothing_o of_o and_o those_o of_o zurich_n in_o their_o confession_n write_v thus_o luther_n boast_v that_o himself_o be_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o the_o german_n who_o have_v learn_v nothing_o of_o any_o and_o all_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o none_o know_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o they_o have_v know_v by_o he_o 3._o three_o they_o write_v that_o luther_n do_v kindle_v the_o protestant_a light_n schusselburg_n tom_n 13._o catal._n haeret_fw-la pag._n 897_o light_n luther_n kindle_v the_o protestant_a light_n by_o luther_n ministry_n the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v kindle_v again_o for_o we_o lobechius_n disput_fw-la 1._o pag._n 6._o by_o this_o man_n ministry_n the_o lord_n have_v kindle_v in_o germany_n the_o light_n of_o the_o heavenly_a truth_n m._n jewel_n defence_n apol._n part_n 1._o cap._n 7._o divis_fw-la 3._o pag._n 56._o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o kindle_v again_o the_o light_n which_o you_o have_v quench_v verheiden_n in_o his_o image_n at_o the_o image_n of_o luther_n thou_n first_o do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n with_o so_o great_a constancy_n tho●_n do_v lighten_v the_o torch_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o world_n and_o at_o the_o image_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la he_o say_v of_o he_o and_o luther_n foundation_n lay_v the_o foundation_n these_o two_o architect_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a kingdom_n d._n whitaker_n count_v 4._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 693._o luther_n light_v a_o torch_n which_o no_o flood_n can_v put_v out_o and_o in_o praefat._n tom_fw-mi 2._o danaei_n it_o be_v say_v god_n raise_v up_o luther_n for_o to_o kindle_v and_o restore_v to_o the_o world_n the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v a_o kindler_n of_o light_n but_o to_o be_v author_n thereof_o 4._o four_o they_o say_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o renewer_n the_o founder_n the_o restorer_n the_o settler_n and_o promulgator_n of_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o exegesi_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 358._o write_v that_o luther_n challenge_v to_o himself_o all_o the_o instauration_n of_o say_v illyricus_n in_o schusselburg_n tom_fw-mi 13._o catal._n haeret_fw-la fol._n 850_o this_o same_o religion_n be_v renew_v and_o settle_v by_o luther_n hamburgenses_n ibidem_fw-la fol._n 658._o it_o renew_a religion_n &_o settle_v it_o luther_n true_o the_o renewer_n of_o divine_a worship_n heshusius_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr praesentia_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v of_o luther_n he_o be_v that_o notable_a instrument_n by_o which_o true_a religion_n be_v renew_v saxonici_fw-la in_o the_o conference_n at_o aldburg_n scripto_fw-la 7._o pag._n 319._o speak_v thus_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n renew_v by_o luther_n hemingius_n in_o schusselburg_n lib._n 2._o theol._n caluin_n pap._n 133._o luther_n restore_v the_o ancient_a worship_n which_o our_o first_o parent_n receive_v of_o god_n and_o which_o christ_n commend_v to_o his_o church_n caluin_n admonit_a 2._o pag._n 147_o by_o his_o endeavour_n principal_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v restore_v and_o pag._n 768._o god_n raise_v luther_n &_o other_o gospel_n restore_v purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o who_o ministry_n our_o church_n be_v found_v and_o institute_v the_o protestant_a prince_n in_o germany_n in_o schusselburg_n tom_n 13._o catal_a pag._n 877._o write_v that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n willing_o affirm_v the_o french_a church_n to_o acknowledge_v luther_n to_o be_v their_o father_n in_o christ._n or_o as_o thuanus_n lib._n 79._o histor_n report_v their_o word_n that_o luther_n be_v esteem_v and_o honour_v of_o the_o french_a church_n as_o their_o father_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o his_o ministry_n truth_n be_v first_o pull_v out_o beza_n de_fw-fr haeret._n puniend_n pag_n 148_o luther_n the_o renewer_n of_o christian_a religion_n religion_n renew_a religion_n and_o in_o his_o image_n the_o principal_a instrument_n of_o christianity_n renew_v in_o germany_n danaeus_n cont_n 5._o pag._n 1135._o reckon_v luther_n among_o those_o of_o who_o say_v he_o all_o other_o man_n have_v receive_v what_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o have_v and_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr euchar._n cap._n 1._o truth_n first_o renewer_n of_o the_o church_n &_o truth_n term_v he_o the_o renewer_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n and_o apol._n pro_fw-la eccles_n heluet_n the_o first_o renewer_n of_o the_o church_n hospin_n part_n 2._o hist_o fol._n 134_o the_o first_o
ready_a to_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o profess_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n which_o christ_n will_v have_v to_o be_v perpetual_a by_o evident_a reason_n our_o succession_n be_v manifest_a although_o all_o history_n be_v silent_a of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o person_n and_o continuation_n of_o succession_n and_o the_o like_a he_o have_v pag._n 154._o and_o 331._o d._n white_a in_o his_o way_n pag._n 403._o say_v he_o know_v his_o church_n be_v always_o because_o it_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v be_v extinguish_v the_o like_a he_o say_v pag._n 320._o &_o 326._o likewise_o luther_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n tom_fw-mi 7._o fol._n 149._o caluin_n in_o matth._n cap._n 24._o vers_fw-la 28._o and_o general_o all_o of_o they_o while_o they_o make_v the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n the_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n arian_n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la arian_n o_o proof_n that_o i_o may_v cry_v out_o in_o s._n augustin_n word_n o_o error_n o_o dotage_n and_o with_o s._n athanase_n a_o worthy_a heresy_n which_o want_v probable_a reason_n to_o under_o prop_v it_o for_o this_o argument_n on_o which_o all_o their_o belief_n that_o their_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n do_v rely_v be_v a_o most_o fond_a sophism_n and_o most_o counterfeit_a syllogism_n as_o manifest_o appear_v whether_o it_o be_v frame_v in_o that_o form_n wherein_o d._n whitaker_n have_v propose_v it_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v reduce_v to_o this_o form_n that_o church_n which_o hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o be_v and_o consequent_o before_o luther_n the_o protestant_a church_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o say_v they_o we_o will_v prove_v by_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o have_v be_v always_o 3._o i_o answer_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v a_o manifest_a sophime_n for_o many_o cause_n for_o if_o the_o mayor_n be_v particular_a so_o that_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v some_o church_n which_o hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o be_v it_o be_v true_a because_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o hold_v christ_n true_a doctrine_n have_v always_o be_v but_o then_o the_o syllogism_n be_v sophism_n for_o want_n of_o due_a form_n infer_v a_o conclusion_n out_o of_o particular_a proposition_n but_o if_o the_o mayor_n be_v universal_a according_a as_o it_o be_v make_v of_o d._n whitaker_n then_o so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n as_o he_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a and_o no_o way_n true_a but_o only_o apparent_a and_o therefore_o unfit_a to_o make_v a_o true_a syllogism_n but_o only_o a_o counterfeit_a and_o a_o sophism_n falsity_n protestant_n assume_v a_o manifest_a falsity_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a be_v evident_a because_o that_o church_n or_o company_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v strict_o and_o proper_o term_v schismatical_a hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o both_o the_o father_n teach_v and_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o do_v also_o most_o plain_o affirm_v &_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o sith_o as_o the_o philosopher_n teach_v those_o thing_n be_v probable_a which_o seem_v true_a to_o all_o or_o to_o most_o or_o to_o wise_a man_n and_o those_o either_o all_o or_o most_o or_o most_o approve_a and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o probable_a serve_v only_o to_o make_v sophism_n the_o foresay_a mayor_n not_o seem_v true_a to_o all_o or_o most_o or_o the_o wise_a christian_n yea_o not_o even_o to_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v no_o probable_a proposition_n but_o only_o apparent_a and_o therefore_o not_o fit_a to_o make_v a_o true_a syllogism_n but_o only_o a_o apparent_a and_o counterfeit_a 4._o that_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o a_o schismatical_a church_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v manifest_a by_o s._n augustine_n who_o lib._n quest_n euang._n pag._n 28._o tom_n 4._o say_v it_o use_v to_o be_v inquire_v wherein_o schismatickes_n differ_v from_o heret●kes_n doctrine_n that_o schismatic_n hold_v true_a doctrine_n and_o this_o find_v that_o no_o difference_n in_o faytht_fw-mi but_o breach_n of_o society_n in_o communion_n make_v schismatic_n and_o lib._n de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la cap._n 10_o heretic_n by_o believe_a wrong_n of_o god_n violate_v the_o faith_n but_o schismatickes_n by_o wicked_a division_n leap_v from_o fraternal_a charity_n albeit_o they_o believe_v aright_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v and_o lib._n cont_n gaud._n cap._n 9_o refute_v he_o because_o he_o have_v say_v that_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n be_v the_o same_o against_o which_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o schismatic_n by_o sacrilegious_a division_n and_o a_o heretic_n by_o sacrilegious_a opinion_n and_o lib._n 1._o cont_n cresc_n cap._n 29._o and_o the_o gest_n be_v cum_fw-la emerito_fw-la affirm_v that_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o church_n s._n hierome_n in_o tit._n 3._o we_o judge_v this_o difference_n to_o be_v between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n that_o heresy_n hold_v a_o naughty_a opinion_n schism_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n by_o dissension_n of_o bishop_n s._n gregory_n lib._n 18._o moral_a cap._n 14._o some_o do_v believe_v false_a thing_n of_o god_n other_o by_o god_n help_n believe_v right_o of_o god_n but_o keep_v not_o unity_n with_o their_o brethren_n these_o be_v divide_v by_o schism_n s._n isidor_n lib._n 8._o origin_n cap_n 3._o schism_n take_v its_o name_n of_o breach_n for_o it_o believe_v the_o same_o religion_n and_o rite_n that_o other_o do_v only_o be_v please_v to_o keep_v company_n a_o part_n the_o same_o teach_v s._n ireneus_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 62._o s._n chrysost_o hom_n 3._o in_o 1._o cor._n s._n optat._n lib._n 1._o 4._o &_o 5._o cont_n parmen_fw-la and_o other_o and_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o reason_n for_o if_o schismatic_n do_v err_v also_o in_o faith_n they_o shall_v not_o differ_v from_o heretic_n and_o it_o be_v grant_v both_o of_o old_a and_o new_a heretic_n for_o thus_o say_v faustus_n in_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 20._o cont_n faustum_n cap._n 3._o schism_n if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v be_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o &_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o other_o do_v only_o to_o be_v delight_v with_o division_n of_o assembly_n caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 5._o austin_n put_v this_o difference_n betwixt_o heretic_n and_o schismatik_n that_o they_o corrupt_v the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o faith_n with_o false_a doctrine_n these_o sometime_o even_o have_v the_o like_a say_v break_v asunder_o the_o band_n of_o society_n and_o in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 11._o vers_fw-la 19_o it_o be_v know_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o ancient_a use_v both_o these_o nams_n schism_n heresy_n they_o put_v heresy_n in_o difference_n of_o doctrine_n but_o schism_n rather_o in_o alienation_n of_o mind_n to_o wit_n when_o any_o either_o upon_o envy_n or_o hatred_n of_o the_o pastor_n or_o of_o frowardness_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n beza_n libro_fw-la de_fw-la puniendis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la pag._n 89_o shism_n proper_o be_v the_o division_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o pag._n 150._o let_v they_o remember_v that_o we_o term_v they_o not_o heretic_n who_o be_v proper_o call_v schismatic_n the_o same_o he_o have_v in_o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 10._o and_o other_o where_o plessie_a lib._n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 1._o pag._n 16_o we_o call_v erroneous_a church_n either_o heretic_n or_o schismatics_n according_o as_o they_o err_v either_o in_o faith_n or_o in_o charity_n and_o pag._n 32._o what_o pertain_v to_o schismatical_a church_n either_o they_o be_v simple_o schismatical_a or_o when_o heresy_n also_o be_v adjoin_v as_o it_o use_v after_o schism_n as_o a_o ague_n after_o a_o wound_n and_o cap._n 10._o pag._n 340._o true_a and_o pure_a schismatik_n be_v those_o who_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n yet_o make_v meeting_n a_o part_n peter_n martyr_n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr schism_n pag._n 618._o i_o think_v it_o more_o plain_a to_o define_v schism_n to_o be_v a_o cut_v a_o sunder_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a peace_n &_o unity_n and_o pag._n 619_o there_o may_v be_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n without_o heresy_n aretius_n also_o in_o locis_fw-la part_n 2._o fol._n 10_o schism_n sometime_o in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n break_v society_n bucan_n in_o loc_n quest_n 33._o de_fw-fr eccl._n affirm_v that_o shismatik_n differ_v from_o heretic_n because_o heresy_n proper_o be_v dissension_n in_o doctrine_n pol●n_n part_n 2._o thes_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccl._n albeit_o schismatical_a church_n agree_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n zanchius_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n there_o may_v be_v breach_n in_o the_o symbol_n of_o charity_n that_o be_v in_o
participation_n of_o sacrament_n communication_n of_o public_a prayer_n and_o such_o like_a other_o ecclesiastical_a exercise_n to_o wit_n when_o one_o thought_n he_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o principal_a head_n of_o christian_a faith_n yet_o i_o know_v not_o for_o what_o light_a cause_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o communicate_v not_o with_o she_o in_o the_o sacrament_n such_o say_v he_o be_v proper_o call_v schismatics_n m._n perkins_n in_o cap._n 5._o galat._n vers_fw-la 21._o heresy_n be_v in_o doctrine_n schism_n in_o manner_n order_n and_o government_n d._n fulke_o de_fw-fr success_n pag._n 165_o there_o may_v be_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n where_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v hold_v on_o both_o party_n &_o the_o one_o want_v lawful_a succession_n d._n field_n lib._n 1._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 7_o some_o profess_v the_o whole_a save_a faith_n but_o not_o in_o unity_n as_o schismatic_o dancus_fw-la in_o august_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la cap._n 3._o he_o be_v a_o schismatic_n who_o retain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o entire_a yet_o without_o probable_a and_o better_a reason_n follow_v not_o the_o decent_a rite_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o he_o have_v apol._n pro_fw-la heluet._n eccles_n pag._n 1485._o bullinger_n tom_n 1._o decad._n 5._o serm_n 2._o vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n pag._n 190._o d._n whitaker_n count_v 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 10._o d._n rainolds_n praelect_a 1._o col_fw-fr 2._o heshusius_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n 1._o and_o other_o 5._o now_o that_o proper_a schismatic_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o wilful_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o member_n or_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n church_n that_o schismatic_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n and_o manifest_a reason_n s._n augustin_n lib._n de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la cap._n 10._o say_v neither_o do_v a_o heretic_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o a_o schismatic_n tract_n 3._o in_o 1._o joan._n all_o heretic_n all_o schismatics_n be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n lib._n 3._o the_o baptism_n cap._n 19_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n be_v false_a christian_n and_o lib_n 2._o cont_n crescon_n cap._n 29_o i_o think_v not_o that_o any_o so_o dote_v to_o believe_v he_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v not_o charity_n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o many_o place_n s._n ambrose_n lib._n 7._o in_o luc._n cap._n 11._o understand_v that_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o from_o the_o church_n s._n optatus_n lib._n 2._o the_o church_n can_v be_v with_o any_o heretic_n or_o schismatics_n s._n fulgentius_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la cap._n 38_o believe_v most_o steadfast_o and_o doubt_v nothing_o that_o not_o only_o all_o pagan_n but_o also_o all_o jew_n heretic_n &_o schismatik_n which_o end_n this_o life_n out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n the_o same_o teach_v s._n hierome_n &_o s._n chrysostome_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la s._n ignatius_n epist_n ad_fw-la smyrnens_fw-la s._n iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 62._o s._n cyprian_n lib._n de_fw-la unit_fw-la &_o epist_n 42.51.55_o s._n prosper_v de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gentium_fw-la cap._n 4._o and_o the_o rest_n the_o protestant_n confession_n of_o this_o matter_n we_o relate_v heretofore_o among_o who_o say_v ●_o lib._n 1._o c._n ●_o num_fw-la ●_o that_o this_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n reason_n also_o convince_v the_o same_o for_o as_o caluin_n confess_v 4._o institut_fw-la loc_fw-la cit_fw-la the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v hold_v with_o two_o band_n to_o wit_n consent_n of_o doctrine_n and_o fraternal_a charity_n but_o schismatic_n break_v the_o band_n of_o fraternal_a charity_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o within_o the_o church_n again_o danaeus_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccl._n c._n 5._o say_v this_o be_v the_o mark_n that_o thou_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o outward_o thou_o profess_v the_o faith_n &_o communicate_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n but_o schismatics_n do_v not_o communicate_v in_o sacrament_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o d._n feild_n lib._n 2._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 2._o say_v communion_n in_o sacrament_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n be_v a_o essential_a note_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n but_o shismatik_n want_v this_o communion_n and_o casaubon_n epist_n ad_fw-la card._n peron_n pag._n 9_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o conjunction_n of_o mind_n and_o in_o true_a charity_n and_o office_n of_o charity_n especial_o of_o mutual_a prayer_n but_o schismatic_n be_v not_o unite_v in_o charity_n and_o office_n of_o mutual_a prayer_n final_o only_a catholic_n be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o be_v evident_a and_o 3._o and_o whi._n conc_fw-fr 2._o q._n 5._o cap._n 3._o protestant_n confess_v but_o schismatic_n be_v not_o catholik_o as_o the_o very_a name_n do_v declare_v the_o father_n doc_fw-fr teach_v and_o 7._o and_o gesner_n loc_fw-la 24._o field_n l._n de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 7._o protestant_n acknowledge_v 6._o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o foresay_a mayor_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o also_o so_o manifest_o false_a as_o out_o of_o this_o question_n it_o be_v common_o deny_v of_o protestant_n themselves_o beside_o it_o be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o also_o so_o improbable_a that_o neither_o it_o be_v prove_v of_o protestant_n nor_o can_v be_v any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o proof_n of_o fool_n or_o wilful_a man_n that_o be_v by_o their_o own_o say_n for_o d._n whitaker_n as_o we_o have_v see_v prove_v it_o no_o other_o way_n then_o by_o say_v it_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n d._n fulke_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a but_o luther_n more_o boast_o say_v l._n the_o missa_fw-la priu_fw-la tom_fw-mi 7._o f._n 247._o this_o be_v our_o solid_a foundation_n and_o most_o steadfast_a rock_n whersoever_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v there_o be_v necessary_o the_o true_a holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o who_o doubt_v of_o this_o say_v he_o may_v in_o like_a manner_n doubt_n whether_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n a_o notable_a proof_n sure_o and_o fit_a for_o pythagoras_n school_n and_o a_o sound_a foundation_n on_o which_o to_o feign_a a_o church_n shall_v rely_v and_o a_o fit_a rock_n for_o they_o to_o build_v upon_o who_o have_v leave_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n wherefore_o that_o i_o may_v imitate_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o like_a matter_n 33._o lib._n 1._o count_v gaudent_fw-la cap._n 33._o i_o ask_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n have_v tell_v they_o that_o wheresoever_o true_a doctrine_n be_v there_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o god_n let_v they_o read_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n where_o indeed_o we_o read_v that_o where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o true_a doctrine_n be_v but_o contrariwise_o that_o where_o true_a doctrine_n be_v there_o the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o we_o never_o read_v if_o man_n have_v tell_v you_o this_o behold_v a_o fiction_n of_o man_n behold_v what_o you_o believe_v behold_v what_o you_o serve_v behold_v for_o what_o you_o rebel_v you_o run_v mad_a you_o burn_v again_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v they_o sure_o no_v other_o than_o yourselves_o and_o what_o be_v your_o authority_n i_o say_v not_o with_o we_o but_o even_o with_o yourselves_o be_v as_o one_o of_o your_o part_n say_v the_o judgement_n of_o lutheran_n or_o sacramentarye_n the_o square_a of_o truth_n moreover_o 13._o pareus_n l_o 3_o ce_fw-fr ●●stifie_v cap._n 13._o see_v that_o three_o thing_n be_v essential_a or_o substantial_a to_o the_o true_a church_n to_o wit_n true_a doctrine_n lawful_a pastor_n and_o people_n follow_v their_o pastor_n nor_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v unless_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n be_v it_o be_v sophistry_n and_o madness_n to_o infer_v that_o that_o company_n be_v the_o true_a church_n wherein_o one_o only_a of_o these_o part_n be_v to_o be_v find_v if_o they_o say_v that_o by_o the_o true_a church_n they_o mean_v not_o she_o which_o be_v true_a in_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o her_o which_o be_v true_a in_o doctrine_n of_o who_o essence_n be_v only_a truth_n of_o doctrine_n first_o they_o deceive_v the_o reader_n for_o we_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o church_n true_a in_o essence_n not_o of_o that_o which_o be_v only_o true_a in_o doctrine_n as_o a_o schismatical_a church_n may_v be_v beside_o if_o they_o mean_v such_o
neither_o do_v any_o man_n feel_v or_o perceive_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v a_o member_n of_o such_o a_o church_n before_o that_o time_n wherefore_o as_o he_o shall_v manifest_o play_v the_o sophister_n who_o will_v go_v about_o to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o sun_n appear_v at_o midnight_n so_o likewise_o do_v he_o who_o out_o of_o scripture_n endevore_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o protestant_n church_n before_o luther_n because_o all_o man_n sense_n convince_v the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o beside_o protestant_n write_v that_o though_o faith_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v thing_n which_o we_o see_v not_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o command_v we_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o we_o see_v for_o otherwise_o faith_n shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o sense_n and_o none_o shall_v become_v faithful_a but_o he_o shall_v first_o be_v senseless_a but_o sure_o wonderful_a be_v the_o blindness_n or_o wilfulness_n of_o sacramentary_n who_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n against_o the_o most_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n will_v endeavour_n to_o prove_v by_o sense_n that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v not_o sensible_a and_o here_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o existence_n of_o their_o church_n before_o luther_n out_o of_o some_o apparent_a show_n of_o scripture_n against_o the_o most_o manifest_a sense_n of_o all_o man_n will_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v before_o luther_n time_n when_o as_o a_o church_n be_v a_o sensible_a thing_n and_o can_v be_v feel_v either_o of_o other_o or_o at_o least_o of_o they_o who_o be_v of_o it_o how_o much_o better_a and_o more_o reasonable_o shall_v they_o proceed_v if_o in_o the_o eucharist_n where_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o sensible_a they_o will_v rather_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o most_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n then_o to_o the_o suspicion_n of_o their_o sense_n which_o can_v judge_v of_o nothing_o but_o of_o sensible_a accident_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v be_v sensible_a they_o will_v submit_v their_o uncertain_a if_o not_o false_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n not_o only_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o man_n but_o also_o the_o most_o certain_a exposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n but_o this_o show_v that_o in_o their_o belief_n they_o be_v guide_v neither_o by_o sense_n nor_o scripture_n but_o out_o of_o they_o both_o borrow_v a_o show_n of_o proof_n for_o that_o which_o of_o their_o mere_a wilfulness_n or_o fancy_n they_o choose_v to_o believe_v 10._o thus_o thou_o see_v christian_n reader_n for_o how_o vain_a a_o sophism_n who_o mayor_n be_v manifest_o false_a &_o so_o false_a as_o that_o out_o of_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v general_o deny_v of_o protestant_n themselves_o and_o so_o improbable_a also_o as_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v in_o no_o show_n or_o colour_n and_o who_o minor_a be_v more_o doubtful_a than_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o prove_v sophistical_a and_o no_o other_o than_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o heretic_n be_v for_o how_o vain_a a_o sophism_n i_o say_v than_o the_o which_o scarce_o any_o can_v be_v more_o vain_a protestant_n believe_v or_o rather_o will_v seem_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n whole_o incredible_a and_o in_o a_o thing_n sensible_a against_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o mankind_n to_o wit_n that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o hold_v the_o who_o substance_n or_o all_o the_o substantial_a and_o fundamental_a point_n of_o protestancy_n nor_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n respect_n either_o their_o o●●e_a conscience_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n or_o tribunal_n of_o god_n or_o danger_n of_o their_o eternal_a damnation_n sure_o sabel_n homil._n count_v sabel_n that_o i_o may_v end_v with_o s._n basils_n word_n i_o moan_n and_o bewail_v they_o that_o for_o a_o mean_a sophism_n and_o counterfeit_a paralogism_n they_o cast_v themselves_o into_o hell_n 11._o out_o of_o all_o which_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n i_o thus_o frame_v my_o ten_o and_o last_o demonstration_n if_o no_o sufficient_a testimony_n nor_o any_o probable_a argument_n but_o only_o one_o fond_a sophism_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v before_o luther_n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o any_o wise_a and_o prudent_a man_n but_o no_o other_o proof_n can_v be_v bring_v therefore_o etc._n etc._n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o before_o luther_n sure_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a by_o itself_o and_o the_o minor_a by_o what_o have_v be_v bring_v in_o this_o chapter_n certain_o if_o every_o one_o of_o the_o demonstration_n which_o we_o have_v bring_v do_v not_o convince_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o before_o luther_n at_o least_o all_o of_o they_o together_o manifest_o convince_v it_o for_o by_o the_o first_o five_o demonstration_n be_v show_v that_o before_o luther_n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o it_o be_v in_o no_o place_n be_v unknown_a of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v not_o see_v of_o any_o nor_o have_v any_o pastor_n and_o with_o the_o rest_n have_v be_v demonstrate_v that_o after_o luther_n arise_v no_o ancient_a protestant_a do_v ever_o appear_v and_o adjoine_v himself_o to_o luther_n that_o all_o the_o first_o know_n protestant_n have_v be_v papist_n afore_o time_n that_o the_o protestant_a company_n and_o religion_n be_v new_a that_o luther_n and_o other_o plain_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v autho_fw-mi of_o that_o religion_n and_o final_o that_o no_o proof_n beside_o one_o frivolous_a fallacy_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o show_v that_o such_o a_o church_n or_o religion_n have_v be_v in_o former_a time_n and_o if_o yet_o any_o protestant_a doubt_n hereof_o let_v he_o at_o least_o compare_v all_o the_o foresay_a demonstration_n wherewith_o so_o many_o way_n out_o of_o the_o very_a testimony_n of_o protestant_n we_o have_v show_v that_o no_o such_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n with_o their_o vain_a sophism_n wherewith_o they_o make_v show_v to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o he_o will_v easy_o perceive_v on_o who_o side_n this_o so_o important_a truth_n be_v like_a to_o stand_v and_o if_o he_o make_v any_o account_n of_o truth_n of_o god_n service_n of_o his_o own_o reputation_n or_o eternal_a salvation_n he_o will_v forsake_v the_o protestant_n church_n &_o put_v himself_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o as_o s._n augustine_n speak_v even_o in_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o mankind_n have_v not_o only_o be_v in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n 17._o de_fw-fr util_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 17._o but_o also_o have_v have_v pastor_n nor_o have_v be_v visible_a only_o to_o her_o own_o but_o to_o other_o also_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o have_v most_o valiant_o fight_v overcome_v and_o triumph_v over_o jew_n pagan_n heretic_n schismatik_n and_o all_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n to_o prefer_v before_o this_o most_o ancient_a most_o glorious_a church_n another_o new_o start_v up_o many_o age_n lurk_v know_v to_o none_o not_o to_o her_o own_o and_o destitute_a of_o pastor_n flock_n seat_n and_o appearance_n and_o in_o truth_n feign_v and_o devise_v and_o to_o omit_v all_o other_o proof_n wound_v deadly_a with_o so_o many_o confession_n of_o her_o own_o champion_n and_o prove_v by_o one_o only_a vain_a fallacy_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o then_o to_o prefer_v lie_n before_o truth_n darkness_n before_o light_n death_n before_o life_n the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n before_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o final_o wilful_o to_o cast_v himself_o headlong_o into_o hell_n what_o he_o must_v observe_v who_o will_v answer_v the_o foresay_a demonstration_n chap._n xvi_o see_v i_o have_v yield_v so_o much_o to_o protestant_n &_o condescend_v to_o so_o unequal_a condition_n as_o that_o i_o have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o church_n and_o religion_n by_o the_o only_a confession_n of_o luther_n and_o other_o protestant_n it_o be_v reason_n that_o if_o any_o one_o of_o they_o go_v about_o to_o answer_n my_o foresay_a demonstration_n he_o hold_v observe_v these_o most_o just_a law_n which_o i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o and_o which_o themselves_o have_v prescribe_v to_o other_o 2._o 643._o see_v jewel_n defence_n apol_n par_fw-fr 2._o c._n d._n 5._o kemnice_n exam._n tit_n de_fw-fr script_n epist_n monit_fw-la p._n 145._o calu._n count_v seruet_fw-la p._n 643._o first_o therefore_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o protestant_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v let_v he_o either_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v true_o cite_v by_o i_o or_o if_o he_o deny_v that_o let_v he_o not_o say_v it_o only_o but_o let_v he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v suppose_v falsify_v or_o so_o change_v as_o that_o the_o sense_n which_o i_o
renewer_n of_o evangelicall_a truth_n and_o doctrine_n bucer_n resp_n ad_fw-la episc_n abrincen_v pag._n 613._o write_v that_o god_n by_o luther_n have_v merueilous_o and_o happy_o restore_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o our_o age_n religion_n restore_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n restore_v religion_n d._n whitaker_n count_v 2._o quest_n 5._o cap._n 12._o pag._n 528_o luther_n only_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o restore_v religion_n corrupt_v and_o to_o renew_v the_o ancient_a and_o true_a doctrine_n and_o ad_fw-la rat._n 10._o campiani_n call_v he_o the_o renewer_n of_o the_o old_a say_v or_o as_o the_o english_a apology_n term_v he_o the_o promulgator_n of_o this_o doctrine_n d._n humphrey_n in_o prolegomenis_fw-la pag._n 82._o say_v we_o reverence_v luther_n as_o a_o great_a renewer_n of_o religion_n and_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v a_o renewer_n restorer_n settler_n of_o a_o thing_n corrupt_v especial_o if_o he_o restore_v the_o sum_n thereof_o as_o bucer_n say_v that_o luther_n restore_v the_o sum_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o be_v a_o author_n or_o maker_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o very_a substance_n thereof_o 5._o final_o they_o plain_o grant_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o to_o who_o protestancy_n be_v reveal_v that_o he_o lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o protestant_a religion_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o captain_n reveal_v luther_n first_o to_o who_o protestat_n be_v reveal_v author_n and_o begetter_n thereof_o luther_n himself_o in_o sermone_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la homini_fw-la christiano_n praestandum_fw-la tom_n 7._o fol._n 274._o speak_v thus_o to_o protestant_n i_o be_v the_o first_o who_o god_n set_v in_o these_o list_n i_o be_v also_o the_o first_o to_o who_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o reveal_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o preach_v unto_o you_o behold_v christian_a reader_n a_o new_a 18._o new_a theod._n l._n 2._o c._n 18._o aetius_n surname_v atheist_n who_o say_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v now_o reveal_v to_o he_o by_o god_n which_o hitherto_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v hide_v unto_o all_o a_o new_a eun._n new_a basil_n l._n count_v eun._n eunomius_n who_o say_v that_o he_o have_v seund_v a_o new_a way_n to_o god_n and_o unheard_a of_o which_o none_o before_o have_v perceave_v a_o new_a 42._o new_a vinc._n c._n 42._o nestorius_n who_o glory_v that_o he_o first_o understand_v the_o scripture_n a_o new_a cataphryge_n synod_n cataphryge_n athan._n de_fw-fr synod_n who_o say_v we_o have_v the_o first_o revelation_n &_o of_o we_o begin_v the_o christian_n say_v for_o of_o thou_o luther_n begin_v the_o protestant_a faith_n and_o thou_o be_v the_o first_o to_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v vouchsafe_v to_o reveueale_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v preach_v to_o protestant_n 34._o praescrip_n cap._n 34._o to_o thou_o alone_o that_o i_o may_v use_v tertullians_n word_n have_v truth_n be_v reveal_v forsooth_o thou_o have_v find_v great_a favour_n and_o more_o plentiful_a grace_n at_o the_o devil_n hand_n again_o in_o exposit_n papaselli_n tom_n 2._o protestancy_n lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o protestancy_n fol._n 398._o luther_n have_v these_o word_n when_o i_o lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o this_o cause_n as_o bullinger_n praefat._n comment_fw-fr in_o joan._n write_v of_o zuinglius_fw-la saying_n when_o zuinglius_fw-la lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n moreover_o luther_n tom_n 1._o fol._n 206._o write_v thus_o to_o his_o most_o inward_a fellow_n melancthon_n the_o city_n be_v full_a of_o the_o noise_n of_o my_o name_n herostratus_n a_o herostratus_n and_o all_o man_n desire_v to_o see_v the_o man_n the_o herostratus_n of_o so_o great_a a_o fire_n you_o see_v how_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o his_o most_o assure_a friend_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o herostratus_n that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o fire_n wherewith_o not_o the_o temple_n of_o diana_n but_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n burn_v melancthon_n also_o acknowledge_v the_o like_a as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o luther_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o he_o tom_fw-mi 9_o wittenberg_n germ._n fol._n 416._o thou_o write_v leader_n author_n &_o leader_n that_o for_o my_o authoritye_n sake_n thou_o do_v follow_v i_o as_o the_o author_n and_o leader_n or_o captain_n in_o this_o matter_n behold_v how_o melancthon_n account_v luther_n the_o author_n and_o what_o suspicion_n be_v there_o that_o melancthon_n shall_v in_o this_o matter_n write_v otherwise_o to_o he_o then_o he_o think_v schusselburg_n tom_n 8._o catal._n pag._n 363._o define_v true_a lutheran_n or_o protestant_n to_o be_v those_o who_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n amend_v popish_a abuse_n of_o which_o amendment_n say_v he_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n and_o the_o same_o mean_v they_o who_o call_v luther_n the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n for_o they_o protest_v amendment_n or_o reformation_n be_v indeed_o as_o have_v be_v show_v before_o a_o substantial_a mutation_n or_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o amendment_n or_o reformation_n be_v indeed_o the_o author_n of_o a_o new_a church_n and_o religion_n d._n sutclive_a lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 3._o pag._n 237._o write_v in_o this_o manner_n who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o raise_v the_o church_n fall_v down_o author_n author_n as_o cranmer_n and_o other_o our_o bishop_n also_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 328._o the_o prince_n who_o first_o follow_v the_o author_n of_o restore_a religion_n osiander_n in_o sleidan_n fol._n 22._o say_v that_o luther_n &_o melancthon_n have_v make_v a_o certain_a divinity_n which_o savour_v more_o the_o flesh_n than_o the_o spirit_n maker_n maker_n lobechius_n disput_fw-la 1._o pag._n 26._o call_v luther_n the_o first_o deviser_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n deviser_n deviser_n and_o melchior_n neofanius_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o brunswich_n in_o loc_n kemnitij_fw-la part_n 2._o say_v how_o much_o do_v all_o duchland_n owe_v to_o worthy_a luther_n for_o his_o great_a desert_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o pure_a religion_n author_n author_n d._n covel_n also_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o hooker_n art_n 19_o pag._n 130._o plain_o confess_v that_o some_o protestant_n make_v luther_n and_o caluin_n author_n of_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o hold_v and_o m._n horn_n in_o his_o harbour_n make_v england_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n begetter_n begetter_n i_o be_o thy_o country_n england_n which_o bring_v forth_o bless_v man_n john_n wiclise_n who_o beget_v hus_n who_o beget_v luther_n who_o beget_v truth_n and_o hereupon_o it_o arise_v that_o as_o rescius_fw-la in_o his_o ministromachia_n p._n 15._o report_v the_o lutheran_n call_v islebium_n where_o luther_n be_v bear_v their_o new_a bethleem_n bethleem_n a_o new_a bethleem_n forsooth_o because_o there_o be_v bear_v their_o new_a messiah_n the_o begetter_n author_n and_o founder_n of_o their_o religion_n mark_v now_o reader_n how_o luther_n by_o his_o own_o and_o other_o protestant_n confession_n be_v the_o first_o to_o who_o protestant_a doctrine_n be_v reveal_v lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o protestant_a cause_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a amendment_n or_o reformation_n be_v the_o deviser_n of_o the_o first_o protestant_a confession_n be_v the_o herostratus_n of_o the_o protestant_a fire_n final_o be_v the_o leader_n maker_n begetter_n and_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n the_o very_a same_o which_o in_o all_o this_o book_n i_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v just_o therefore_o may_v protestant_n sing_v to_o luther_n as_o lucretius_n do_v to_o his_o epicure_n the_o author_n &_o beginner_n of_o epicurism_n 3._o lib._n 3._o those_o also_o of_o basse_fw-fr be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o the_o epitaph_n of_o his_o tomb_n to_o call_v oecolampadius_n the_o first_o author_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n in_o that_o city_n as_o report_n hospin_n and_o lavather_o in_o their_o hostory_n a_o 1531._o and_o junius_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 8._o neither_o be_v it_o peculiar_a to_o luther_n to_o spread_v devise_n under_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n for_o thus_o write_v jezler_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la euchar._n fol._n 26._o of_o minister_n matter_n devise_v of_o some_o few_o we_o thrust_v upon_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o king_n henry_n 8._o when_o he_o begin_v to_o incline_v to_o protestancie_n set_v forth_o article_n with_o this_o title_n article_n devise_v of_o his_o majesty_n 6._o and_o from_o this_o evidence_n &_o acknowledgement_n that_o luther_n be_v the_o author_n of_o protestant_a religion_n it_o proceed_v first_o that_o luther_n oftentimes_o call_v it_o his_o doctrine_n his_o gospel_n his_o word_n his_o cause_n his_o part_n for_o so_o he_o speak_v tom_n 1._o fol._n 138._o tom_n 2._o fol._n 23._o doctrine_n protestancy_n be_v luther_n doctrine_n 29._o